JUDGMENT S.B.MAJMUDAR, J. (1) I had the privilege of going through the draft judgment prepared by brother G.B. Pattanaik, J. in the aforesaid suit. I respectfully agree with the same. However, looking to the importance of two pivotal issues, being issue Nos. 2 and 9 (a), (b) & (c), I have thought it fit to supplement the reasoning in the aforesaid judgment by my concurring observations on these issues as under: ISSUE NO. 2 : (2) HAS this Honble COURt jurisdiction to entertain and try this Suit? (MAH). Article 131 provides as under: "131. Original jurisdiction of the Supreme COURt-Subject to the provisions of this Constitution, the Supreme COURt shall, to the exclusion of any other COURt, have original jurisdiction in any dispute (a) XXX XXX XXX (b) xxx xxx xxx (c) between two or more States. If and in so far as the dispute involves any question (whether of law or fact) on which the existence or extent of a legal right depends: xxx xxx xxx (3) WE are not concerned with the Proviso which deals with treaties and agreements entered into or executed before the commencement of the Constitution. As Article 131 itself is subject to the other provisions of the Constitution, we have to turn to Article 262 which deals with disputes relating to waters. Sub-article (1) thereof provides that: "262. Adjudication of disputes relating to waters of inter-State rivers or river valleys - (1) Parliament may by law provide for the adjudication of any dispute or complaint with respect to the use, distribution or control of the waters of, or in, any inter-State river or river valley." Sub-article (2) thereof lays down that: "(2) NotwiTHStanding anything in this Constitution, Parliament may by law provide that neither the Supreme COURt nor any other COURt shall exercise Jurisdiction in respect of any such dispute or complaint as is referred to in clause (1)". It is not in dispute between the parties that the Inter-State Water Disputes Act, 1956 (hereinafter referred to as the Disputes Act) is a legislation passed under Article 262 of the Constitution. It is equally not in dispute that Section 11 thereof excludes the jurisdiction of this COURt in respect of water disputes referred to the Tribunal. It is not in dispute between the parties that the Inter-State Water Disputes Act, 1956 (hereinafter referred to as the Disputes Act) is a legislation passed under Article 262 of the Constitution. It is equally not in dispute that Section 11 thereof excludes the jurisdiction of this COURt in respect of water disputes referred to the Tribunal. It will therefore, have to be seen whether the State of Andhra Pradesh, as plaintiff, having invoked the jurisdiction of this COURt under Article 131 has, in substance, raised water dispute which will exclude the jurisdiction of this COURt as per Section 11 of the Disputes Act read with Article 262 Sub-article (2). In other words, if in substance, the plaintiff wants adjudication of any water dispute between it and the other contesting States, namely, the State of Karnataka or the State OF MAHARASTRA which are upper riparian States located in the Krishna basin through which the river Krishna, which is admittedly an inter-State river, flows. The expression water dispute has been defined by the Disputes Act as per Section 2(c) as under: "water dispute" means any dispute or difference between two or more State Governments with respect to (i) the use, distribution or control of the waters of, or in, any inter-State river or river valley; or (ii) the interpretation of the terms of any agreement relating to the use, distribution or control of such waters or the implementation of such agreement; or (iii) the levy of any water-rate in contravention of the prohibition contained in Section 7." Keeping in view the aforesaid salient features of the Constitutional scheme and the relevant provisions of the Disputes Act, we may turn to the plaint of the State of Andhra Pradesh in the present suit. While deciding the question of jurisdiction of this COURt, the averments in the plaint on demurrer will have to be kept in view. Paragraph 4 of the plaint recites that: "After the Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal rendered its decision, first on 24/12/1973 and a further decision on 27/5/1976, the plaintiff understood that all the riparian States, being constitutional units of the Federation of the Republic of India, would not only accept the said decisions but would give full effect to the same in letter and in spirit as isexpeCTEd of constitutional Governments established by and under the Constitution of India. The Plaintiff had expeCTEd all the party States to consult each other for the projects that they may undertake on the inter-State river Krishna so as to make it apparent to the other States that the projects are in consonance with the decisions of the Tribunal and that their implementation would not, in any manner, affect the rights of the other ripirian States. However, in the recent past, to the utter surprise of the Plaintiff, it has come to light that Karnataka, far Irom acting in accordance with the letter and the spirit of the decisions of the KWDT, has grossly violated the terms of the said decisions while executing various projects on the inter-State river Krishna. Karnataka has "ot only suppressed from the plaintiff information regarding execution of a number of projects unauthorisedly undertaken by it, but also suppressed crucial informations even from Defendant No. 2 Union of India while seeking its approval to these projects. It is rather unfortunate that Defendant No.1 also misled the Central Government and its agencies while seeking financial and other approvals of its projects. The Plaintiff, with a view to amicably settle the matters between the party States, appealed, not only to the Defendant No.1 to desist from such illegal execution of projects, but also to the Union Government to intervene in the matter and to ensure that Karnataka does not contravene the terms of the decisions of the KWDT and does not take undue advantage of it being placed as an upper riparian State with regard to the inter-State river Krishna. However, all such persuasions and negotiations failed. The Plaintiff is thus constrained to approach this Honble COURt invoking the jurisdiction under Article 131 of tr.e Constitution in public interest and in the interest of the inhabitants of the plaintiff- State seeking immediate reliefs of protection o? their interests t}y Ws Honble COURt." After mentioning the history of the earlier water disputes between the riparian States which were adjudicated upon by the Krishna Waters Disputes Tribunal (hereinafter referred to as the KWDT) constituted under Section 4 of the Disputes Act by the Central Government and also after reciting the substance of the decision rendered by the said Tribunal, the grievances voiced in that suit in the light of the post-award developments are highlighted in paragraphs 65 to 68 of the plaint under the caption Violation of KWDT decisions by Karnataka-defendant no. 1, in the suit and it is in the light of these grievances that prayers and reliefs have been put forward after paragraph 75 of the plaint. The main prayers on the basis of which relief is sought for are prayers (a), (c), (d) and (f) which read as under: "(a) declare that the report/decision dated 24/12/1973 and the further report/ decision dated 27/5/1976 of the Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal (KWDT) in their entirety are binding upon the three riparian States OF MAHARASTRA, Karnataka and Andhra Pradesh and also the Union of India. (b) xxx xxx (c) declare that the party States are entitled to utilise not more than the quantity of water which is allocated or permitted by the decisions of the KWDT for the respective projects of the respective party States before the Tribunal; and that any variation in either storage or utilisation of the waters by each such state in respect of each of such projects could only be with the prior consent or concurrence of the other riparian States; (d) declare that all the projects executed and/or which are in the process of execution by the State of Karnataka which are not in conformity with and conflict with or violate the decisions of the KWDT, as illegal and unauthorised. (e) XXX XXX (f) declare that the States of Karnataka and MAHARASTRA shall not be entitled to claim any rights preferential or otherwise in respect of storage, control and use of waters of the inter-State river Krishna in respect of the schemes/projects not authorised by the decision of the KWDT. xxxx xxxx xxx The aforesaid averments in the suit highlighting the grievances of the plaintiff State of Andhra Pradesh when read in the light of the prayers put forward for consideration and the reliefs claimed thereby leave no room for doubt that the entire suit is based on the ground that defendant no. 1-State of Karnataka has violated the binding decision of the Tribunal which pertains to Scheme "A" which was duly notified under Section 6 of the Disputes Act by the Central Government. It is this plaint which is sought to be resisted by the first defendant - State of Karnataka by filing its written statement. In the light of these pleadings of main contesting States, issues are framed in the suit. It is this plaint which is sought to be resisted by the first defendant - State of Karnataka by filing its written statement. In the light of these pleadings of main contesting States, issues are framed in the suit. The relevant issues highlighting the grievances of the plaintiff State are issue nos.1, 3, 5, 9(a), (b) & (c), 10 and 20, which read as under: "1. Whether the State of Karnataka has violated the binding decisions dated 24/12/1973 and 27/05/1976 rendered by the KWDT by executing the projects mentioned in para 66, 68 & 69 of the Plaint? (A.P./KAR) 3. Does the Plaintiff prove that the allocation of Krishna Waters by the KWDT in its Final Order are specific for projects and not enbloc as contended by the Defendant?(MAH). 5. Whether the Plaintiff is entitled to a declaration that all the projects executed and/or which are in the process of execution by the State of Karnataka, and not in conformity with or in conflict with the Decisions of the KWDT are illegal and unauthorised?(A.P.). 9. (a) Whether the construction of the Almatti Dam with a FRL of 524.256 m. together with all other projects executed, in progress and contemplated by Karnataka would enable it to utilise more water than allocated by the Tribunal? (A.P.). (b) Whether Karnataka could be permitted to proceed with construction of such a dam without the consent of other riparian States, and without the approval of the Central Government? (A.P.). (c) Whether Karnataka can be permitted to raise the storage level at Almatti Dam above RL 509.16 m. in view of the likely submergence of territories in MAHARASTRA. 10. Whether the Plaintiff proves that the reservoir and irrigation canals as alleged in paragraph 68 of the Plaint are oversized. If so, are they contrary to the decision of the Tribunal? (A.P.). 20. Whether the State of Karnataka has violated the KWDT award by proceeding with several new projects in the sub basin such as K-6, K-8 and K-9 in respect of which restrictions in quantum of utilisations have been imposed in the final decision of the Tribunal? If so, are they contrary to the decision of the Tribunal? (A.P.). 20. Whether the State of Karnataka has violated the KWDT award by proceeding with several new projects in the sub basin such as K-6, K-8 and K-9 in respect of which restrictions in quantum of utilisations have been imposed in the final decision of the Tribunal? (A.P.)." Keeping in view the aforesaid salient features of the plaint of the State of Andhra Pradesh, the nature of controversies raised therein, reliefs claimed and the issues which fall for consideration of the COURt, it is difficult to agree with the contentions of contesting defendants, especially, State OF MAHARASTRA that the plaintiffs case does not fall within the forecorners of Article 131 of the Constitution. It is obvious that the disputes raised by the plaintiff-State of Andhra Pradesh pertain to the alleged non-implementation of the binding award of the KWDT by defendant no. 1 State. It has nothing to do with raising of a fresh water dispute. According to the plaintiff State, whatever was the earlier water dispute between the plaintiff and the defendant no. 1 State or for that matter defendant no.3 State, was already adjudicated upon by the Tribunal constituted under Section 4 of the Disputes Act and which decision was duly published under Section 6 thereof being the decision pertaining to Scheme "A". The grievance of the plaintiff State is that though the decision is binding on the upper riparian States namely, defendant nos.1 and 3, the executive action of the concerned States amount to flouting and violation of the binding decision of the Tribunal. This clearly raises a question of execution and implementation of an already adjudicated water dispute. Once that conclusion is reached, it becomes obvious that Article 262 would be out of picture and only Article 131 will remain operative for being invoked by the disputant State against the defendant States as it would certainly raise a dispute regarding execution and implementation of binding award of the Tribunal and, therefore, a contest does arise between two or more States jn this score. Accordingly, Issue no.2 will have to be answered in favour of the plaintiff and against the defendants. ISSUE NOS. Accordingly, Issue no.2 will have to be answered in favour of the plaintiff and against the defendants. ISSUE NOS. 9(a), (b) & (c) : (4) SO far as these issues are concerned, it has to be kept in view that the main contention of the plaintiff State of Andhra Pradesh is that in the binding award of the KWDT pertaining to Scheme "A", the Tribunal has gone into the question of project-wise allocation of quantity of water available for each of the projects of the contesting States located in the Krishna river basin in so far as they are within the territorial limits of each of the contesting riparian States. However, when we turn to the award of the Tribunal (Exh.PK-1) and as the further award of the Tribunal under Section 5(3) of the Disputes Act (Exh.PK-11) which ultimately got gazetted at pages 102 ana 114 of the Exhibit PK II, we find that, nowhere it is held by the Tribunal that out of the total quantity of water, namely, 2096 TMC per water year on the basis of 75 dependability any fixed quota of water for utilising, was earmarked for Upper Krishna Project (hereinafter referred to as UKP) which consisted of three dams namely, Hippargi Weir, Almatti Dam and Narayanpur Dam. Clause III of the final order of the Tribunal as gazetted under Section 6 of the Disputes Act clearly provides that "the Tribunal hereby determines that, for the purpose of this case, the 75 per cent dependable flow of the river Krishna up to Vijayawada is 2,060 TMC" and this entire quantity is available to the States of Maharasthra, Karnataka and Andhra Pradesh. Out of the total quantity thus found available for distribution, the State OF MAHARASTRA as per clause V is enjoined not to use in any water year more than 560 TMC up to the water year 1982-83 and further additional quantities in future as laid down therein. Similarly, the State of Karnataka is enjoined not to use in any water year more than 700 TMC to start with, up to the water year 1982-83 and further permitted quantities thereafter as laid down therein. Similarly, the State of Karnataka is enjoined not to use in any water year more than 700 TMC to start with, up to the water year 1982-83 and further permitted quantities thereafter as laid down therein. While plaintiff-State of Andhra Pradesh is given approval to use in any water year the remaining water that may be flowing in the river Krishna but thereby it shall not acquire any right whatsoever to use in any water year nor be deemed to have been allocated in any water year, water of the river Krishna of more than 800 TMC up to water year 1982-83 and the additional percentage as provided for subsequent water years. When this final order is read with the Report of the Tribunal comprised of volumes 1 and 2, Exh.PK-1 and Exh.PK-11, it is difficult to hold as contended by the plaintiff-State that the Tribunal has awarded fixed quantity of water to be utilised for each of the projects, especially the UKP. This conclusion gets highlighted, when we turn to clause IX of the final order of the Tribunal pertaining to Scheme "A" wherein out of the water allocated to each of the States certain projects are mentioned for which given quantity of water is allocated. Now in the entire list of projects wherein allotment of water is made project-wise as mentioned in clause IX, UKP is conspicuously absent. It must, therefore, be held that even though the allocation of dependable flow of water per each water year is made for the State of Karnataka with a ceiling as found in clause V of the decision as aforesaid and even while the Tribunal in this connection as referred to UKP the ultimate allotment of total quantity of water has not resulted in indicating any earmarked quantity of water to be stored and utilised in UKP situated in the Krishna river basin within the territorial limits of defendant no. 1 State. It is, therefore, difficult to accept the contention of learned senior counsel for the plaintiff State of Andhra Pradesh that any project-wise allocation of available water is decided upon by the Tribunal while framing Scheme "A", so far as UKP is concerned. 1 State. It is, therefore, difficult to accept the contention of learned senior counsel for the plaintiff State of Andhra Pradesh that any project-wise allocation of available water is decided upon by the Tribunal while framing Scheme "A", so far as UKP is concerned. Once that conclusion is reached, it becomes obvious that at what height the Almatti Dam should be construCTEd, was not on the anvil of scrutiny of the Tribunal nor was any decision rendered by the Tribunal in that connection which could be made subject matter of the challenge in the present suit of the State of Andhra Pradesh on the ground that any such express direction of the Tribunal in this connection is violated by defendant no.1 State. (5) EVEN if this conclusion is reached a moot question survives whether the construction of the Almatti Dam with FRL of 524.256 would ultimately result in utilisation of more water by defendant no.1 State than what is allotted by the Tribunal. This grievance, which is made subject matter of issue no.9(a) at the instance of the plaintiff State of Andhra Pradesh, has a clear nexus with the grievance of the said State about the violation of the decision of the Tribunal. Thus, even if it is held that the decision of the Tribunal regarding Scheme "A" has not expressly mentioned any permissible height to which the Almatti Dam could be construCTEd with appropriate storage capacity of water if it is held on evidence that the height of 524.256 FRL would result in utilisation of more water per water year than as allowed, as per clause V of the decision of the Tribunal, then the question of violation of injunction of clause V by defendant No.1 State would clearly fall for consideration. It is in that light that we have to consider the grievance of the plaintiff-State. (6) FOR deciding this question we may usefully refer to UKP Stage-II Multi Purpose Project - detailed Report submitted by defendant no.1 State before the Tribunal (Exh.PAP-46). In the said Report, we find at serial no. 2 salient features of the project. It is no doubt mentioned as UKP Stage-II Multi Purpose Project, irrigation and power. At paragraph 2.3.1 we find mentioned irrigation for Stage-II schemes and culturable command area is shown to be 1,97,120 hectares. In the said Report, we find at serial no. 2 salient features of the project. It is no doubt mentioned as UKP Stage-II Multi Purpose Project, irrigation and power. At paragraph 2.3.1 we find mentioned irrigation for Stage-II schemes and culturable command area is shown to be 1,97,120 hectares. While dealing with power at 2.3.2, we find total annual energy to be generated as 672 million units. Chapter IV of the said report PAP- 46 deals with Hydrology covering water budget gate height at Almatti Dam and Flood routing studies for PMF for Back Water Effect. In para 4.4.3 it has been mentioned that according to the studies made by IISc., the minimum FRL required at Almatti reservoir to utilise 173 TMC of water to meet the mandatory release for RTPS, domestic and industrial and irrigation requirements is EL 519.60m. Considering the prospects of power generation at Almatti Dam, which is crucial for the State, the Government of Karnataka has decided to maintain water level at FRL at EL 524.256 m. during monsoon monTHS to utilise the storage above EL 519.60 m. for power generation only. It is not in dispute between the parties that according to the defendant no.1 State, it seeks to store 173 TMC of water at Almatti Dam for the purpose of irrigation. If that is so the said water can irrigate cultural command area as per paragraph 2,3.1 mentioned earlier and can also generate eiectricity of 672 million units, as seen from paragraph 2.3.2. mentioned earlier. We may refer to an affidavit of Prof.D.K.Subramanian on the impact of increasing the FRL of the Almatti Dam in Karnataka on power in the State of Andhra Pradesh at page 109 on compilation II filed by plaintiff State of Andhra Pradesh and which affidavit has been relied upon by defendant no.1 State itself in support of its case. The said affidavit makes an interesting reading. At page 110 of compilation II at para 38, the following relevant averments have been made by the deponent in support of defendant no.1 States case: "If the FRL of Almatti Dam is restriCTEd to 519.60 m., then the power generation will be only 250 MW leading to an energy generation of about 672 million kilowatt hours. At page 110 of compilation II at para 38, the following relevant averments have been made by the deponent in support of defendant no.1 States case: "If the FRL of Almatti Dam is restriCTEd to 519.60 m., then the power generation will be only 250 MW leading to an energy generation of about 672 million kilowatt hours. If the FRL is increased to 524.256 m. then it is both possible and feasible to set up the four cascade power plants downstream of Narayanpur also in addition to increasing the capacity of Almatti Power Plant." (7) ONCE these averments in support of defendant no. 1 s case are read in the light of PAP - 46 referred to earlier, it becomes clear that for generating electricity of 672 million units, the height of the dam could very well be at 519.60 m. That would serve the purpose of the defendant no.1 State both for irrigating the command area of 1,97,120 hectares as well for generating aforesaid units of electricity and would very well result in treating the Almatti project as multi-purpose project. (8) WE may also usefully refer in this connection to an affidavit of Prof. Ram Prasad on behalf of State of Karnataka-defendant no.1 herein. It has been furnished by defendant no.1 State in support of its case. The said affidavit is at page 103 of compilation II file of the State of andhra Pradesh. Paragraph 4 of the said affidavit also makes an interesting reading. The same reads as under: "The Upper Krishna Project (UKP) consists of two reservoirs, one at Almatti and the other at Narayanpur, to utilise 173 TMC. of water for irrigation (including evaporation from the reservoirs). At the instance of the Government of Karnataka, Indian Institute of Science (HSc) carried out a study in 1996 (mentioned in para 12) in which I participated as one of the two technical consultants, which concluded that the full reservoir level (FRL) of the dam at Almatti to utilise 173TMC. After allowing for a 50-year sedimentation of the reservoirs would be R.L. 519.6 m. The Government of Karnataka has planned to raise the FRL of the dam to RL 524.256 m. in order to generate power in the near future with the additional storage available from RL 519.6 m. to RL 524.256 m. limiting the total utilisation under the Project to 173 TMC. The HSc developed a "rule curve" for the operation of UKP reservoirs with Almatti FRL at 524.256 m. so as to maximise the power generation, at the same time limiting the utilisation to 173 TMC. The increase in the FRL and operation of the reservoir as per the rule curve, changes the pattern of flow downstream, i.e., flow into Andhra Pradesh (A.P.) which utilise these waters for irrigation as well as power generation at its projects at jurala, Srisailam, Nagarjunasagar and Prakasam Barrage. Mainly, this change takes the form of a reduction in the flow to Andhra Pradesh in the month of August due to increased impoundment at Almatti, and increase in the flows during subsequent monTHS due to release of the impounded water. This change improves the irrigation performance in Andhra Pradesh, as will be clear later from the reservoir working tables." (9) WE may also refer to another affidavit of Shri M.Krishnappa "on the size of the dam at Almatti and the canals under UKP" relied upon by defendant no.1 State of Karnataka. The said affidavit is at page 106 of the aforesaid compilation II dealing with Almatti Dam. The deponent has stated as under: "Almatti Dam is the main storage under the UKP. The FRL of the Almatti Dam is fixed at RL 1720 ft. (524.256 m.). This was done during the initial days of planning, that is, even before the Constitution of the KWDT. For the utilisation of 173 TMC of water for irrigation, domestic uses and power generation, a storage of 123.25 TMC at Almatti Reservoir, with a FRL of 519.60 m. is necessary. However, FRL of 524.256 m. .with a gross storage of 227.10 TMC is required for an ultimate utilisation of 302 TMC. for irrigation, domestic purposes and power generation. The size of the Dam, as per engineering practices, has relevance to the ultimate utilisation of 302 tmc. under the UKP. In this regard, I have studied the relevant technical records made available by the Irrigation Department and the project officials." (10) THESE affidavits of experts, relied upon by defendant no. 1 State itself show that for utilising 173 TMC of water for irrigation and domestic use and power generation FRL 519.60 will be sufficient. under the UKP. In this regard, I have studied the relevant technical records made available by the Irrigation Department and the project officials." (10) THESE affidavits of experts, relied upon by defendant no. 1 State itself show that for utilising 173 TMC of water for irrigation and domestic use and power generation FRL 519.60 will be sufficient. It may be kept in view in this connection that under the award of the Tribunal an assessment of water requirement for UKP by the State of Karnataka was made by the Tribunal in the general terms as 155 TMC of water at Almatti Dam and 5 more TMC was added to UKP because of calculation error so far as Hippargi weir project was concerned. They total up to 160 TMC and even that apart, according to defendant no.1 State, it would require storage capacity at Almatti Dam for 173 TMC of water for irrigation, domestic use and power generation. We may also keep in view the Tribunals decision, as seen from PK I and II, that Almatti Dam was meant for being treated as a storage carry over reservoir for ultimately releasing water for irrigation to the down stream Narayanpur project. The height of the Almatti reservoir at FRL 519.60 is also found sufficient for the present purpose by the experts whose affidavits have been relied upon by defendant no.1 State itself, as seen earlier. (11) IN this connection we may also refer to the pertinent averments made in the plaint based on the extract of correspondence exchanged between the parties and the Central Water Commission. In para 28 of the plaint a communication dated 1/4/1986 by the Central Water Commission, Government of India, by its letter dated 23rd October, 1986 addressed to the plaintiff State is referred to. The said communication, amongst others, stated as under: "(1) the KWDT has allowed utilisation under the UKP of a total of 160 TMC (103 TMC utilisation allowed under Stage I of the project plus 52 TMC utilisation under Stage II, and 5 TMC utilisation under Hippargi Project). (2) the UKP Stage-I approved by Planning Commission in April 1978, contemplated utilisation of 119 TMC including the reservoir losses. (2) the UKP Stage-I approved by Planning Commission in April 1978, contemplated utilisation of 119 TMC including the reservoir losses. (3) in February 1982 CWC received from the Government of Karnataka a project report on UKP Stage II for irrigating an additional area of 2.00 lakh hectare with an installed capacity for power generation of 218 MWs. As per the project report, the total utilisation contemplated under UKP stages I & II was said to be 173 TMC. (119 TMC Stage I + 31 TMC for Stage II + diversion of Godavari Waters from Polavaram 21 TMC, + regeneration from use of 21 TMC of Godavari waters, 2 TMC). (4) Central Water commission has received a separate report on Hippargi project which envisages utilisation of 10 TMC of Krishna water which was yet to be approved by the planning Commission, thus the total utilisation contemplated was 183 TMC (i.e. 160 TMC of Krishna water + 21 TMC of Godavari water + 2 TMC of regeneration) and not 200 TMC, as reported in a newspaper. Xxx xxxx XXX (12) AT paragraph 34 of the plaint a D.O. letter dated 25.4.94 addressed to the Chief Minister of andhra Pradesh by the then Union Minister for Water Resources is referred to. In this connection the following relevant averments in that communication are extraCTEd : "It was only thereafter that in his D.O. letter No.6/1/91-p. 1-1660, dated 25/4/1994 addressed to the Chief Minister of Andhra Pradesh, the then Union Minister for Water Resources proposed to convene a meeting of the Chief Ministers of the Krishna basin States on Upper Krishna Project Stage-II along with other inter-state projects. In the background note on the projects which was forwarded alongwith the said letter it was stated that the Central Water Commission had observed that the project as envisaged (UKP Stages I & II) creates a physical capability of water utilisation in excess of the envisaged utilisation of 173 TMC. It was observed that "this is possible in view of the proposed top of the radial gate at FRL + 521 meters against the required level of 518.7 meters for utilisation for 173 TMC of water". It was observed that "this is possible in view of the proposed top of the radial gate at FRL + 521 meters against the required level of 518.7 meters for utilisation for 173 TMC of water". (13) IN para 40 of the plaint at page 60 of Vol.-III is mentioned a letter of 11th July, 1996 addressed by the then Minister for Water Resources, Government of India to the Chief Minister of the plaintiff State regarding UKP Stage II. In the said letter it was disclosed that the Central Water Commission have opined that since no permanent flood pool is envisaged, gate top above FRL of518.70M is not acceptable. Meaning thereby that the gate level can go at Almatti Dam up to that height and any further height would not be acceptable to the Central Water Commission. (14) AT para 48 of the plaint it has been averred that "at the request of Andhra Pradesh, the Steering Committee of the ruling United Front Government at the Centre constituted a Committee of four Chief Ministers to examine the issues relating to the construction of Almatti Dam. The Committee of the Chief Ministers met on 12th August, 1996 when it was decided to constitute an Expert Committee, with a representative of the Central Water Commission and Planning Commission, who, however, did not ultimately participate in the proceedings." It has been further stated that the Expert Committee, after going on spot as mentioned in para 51 of the plaint observed as under: "As regards the storage capacity required for utilisation of 173 TMC at UKP as claimed by the 1st defendant, the Committee has observed that even as per the Indian Institute of Sciences at Bangalore an FLR of+518.7 m. would be adequate for the purpose. The Committee however allowed probable losses in storage capacity due to siltation etc. and observed that the FRL on the top of the shutter be fixed for the present at+519.6 m. and the gates be manufactured and ereCTEd accordingly. In the opinion of the Expert Committee, Almatti Dam with FRL at +519.6 m. will provide a storage of about 123 TMC which, alongwith storage of 37.8 TMC at Narayanpur, will be quite adequate to take care of the annual requirements of 173 TMC presently envisaged under the Upper Krishna Project. In the opinion of the Expert Committee, Almatti Dam with FRL at +519.6 m. will provide a storage of about 123 TMC which, alongwith storage of 37.8 TMC at Narayanpur, will be quite adequate to take care of the annual requirements of 173 TMC presently envisaged under the Upper Krishna Project. The Committee felt that the first step to be taken to solve the present problem regarding Almatti Dam is to implement its suggestion and restrict the height of the dam at + 519.6 m...." (15) NOW it is, of COURse, true that the plaintiff State had not accepted the entitlement of first defendant to use 173 TMC under UKP and the height of the dam at FRL 519.6. The Expert Committees opinion backed up by the aforesaid affidavits of the experts relied upon by defendant no.1 State itself shows that the height of Almatti Dam at FRL 519.6 would meet the basic requirement of defendant no. 1 State leaving aside its demand for further storage of water if more water is available to it beyond the allotted water as per clause V of Scheme "A" which is the binding scheme between the parties and in the absence of Scheme "B" getting fructified. (16) IN the light of the aforesaid stand taken by defendant no.1 State and its witnesses and also the opinion of the Expert Committee and the observations of the Central Water Commission, it becomes absolutely clear that even according to defendant no.1 State, the height of Almatti Dam at FRL 519 would meet its present requirements of storage of sufficient water at Almatti dam for irrigation and power generation purposes. It may be that its future need depending upon the contingency of Scheme "B" ultimately getting finalised may require larger storage capacity calling for greater height at Almatti Dam but at present as seen from the records, its need would be satisfied by restricting the height of Almatti Dam at FRL 519. In fact, so far as the aforesaid height is concerned, even the plaintiff State, while cataloguing violations of KWDT decisions by the Karnataka State, has made the following pertinent averments in paras 66 (ii) & 66 (iii) at pages 74 to 76 of its plaint; "66 (ii). As per well accepted engineering practices, a live storage of maximum of 103 TMC is considered sufficient for utilisation of 155 TMC of water for irrigation. As per well accepted engineering practices, a live storage of maximum of 103 TMC is considered sufficient for utilisation of 155 TMC of water for irrigation. This is more apposite in view of the local conditions of the project area. Since the live storage capacity of the Narayanpur reservoir was only 23.77 TMC, the Tribunal allowed construction of the Almatti reservoir only as a carry over reservoir to supplement Narayanpur but did not permit any irrigation under Almatti. Karnataka, however, unilaterally altered the design of Almatti reservoir and converted the same into a multi-purpose project providing for direct irrigation to an extent of 4.13 lakh acres and for generation of 297 mw of hydel power, which involved additional utilisation of atleast 91 TMC of water beyond what was permitted and allocated to UKP by KWDT. As per the modified design, the height of the dam at Almatti has been sought to be increased from 518.7m. to 524.256m. so as to have an increased storage of 116 TMC beyond the permissible storage for irrigation permitted by KWDT at Narayanpur. (iii)The Almatti Project in addition to being a carry over reservoir now envisages utilising an additional 91 TMC of water beyond KWDT allocation to fulfil the following further objectives: S. Details & Area Water No. Utilisation (in lakh Requirement acres) (in TMC) (a) Canal irrigation under 0.90 11 Left and Right Bank Canals at Almatti (b) Irrigation under fore 3.23 39 shore lift scheme (Mulwad) (c) Additional requirement 19 for sugar cane and other second season crops under lift schemes (d) Incremental evaporation 22 loss due to additional storage for power generation (100 TMC) Total 4.13 lakh 91 TMC Acres If Karnataka is permitted to utilise an additional quantum of 91 TMC of water for irrigation and other purposes at Almatti, the dependable flow in the river downstream of Almatti and Narayanpur would be severely reduced adversely affecting the interests of the lower riparian Plaintiff State. Moreover, the said additional utilisation of 91 TMC for irrigation purposes at Almatti by Karnataka would drastically affect the ecological balance, degrade the environment, increase the pollution in the river water and render large extents of irrigated areas in the plaintiff State dry. Moreover, the said additional utilisation of 91 TMC for irrigation purposes at Almatti by Karnataka would drastically affect the ecological balance, degrade the environment, increase the pollution in the river water and render large extents of irrigated areas in the plaintiff State dry. It would also alter the flow pattern which in turn is bound to jeopardise the riparian interests of the agriculturists who have prescriptive rights, a right of customary use of river water within the plaintiff-State. Such utilisation would also adversely affect the power production systems within the Plaintiff-State." (17) THESE averments thus clearly indicate that the real grievance of the plaintiff State is pertaining to the height of almatti Dam beyond 518.7 m. and going up to 524.256 m. In other words, there is no real grievance of the plaintiff State regarding maintenance of height of almatti Dam at least up to 518.7 m. or 519 m. Beyond that it would be a real bone of contention by the plaintiff State. The aforesaid grievance of the plaintiff State is further highlighted, when we turn to para 68 of the plaint at page 82. Therein the plaintiff states that the 1 st defendant Karnataka has grossly violated the decisions of the KWDT. In the said para pertaining to Almatti Dam, at item 2, it was mentioned as under: "Sl. Name of the Area Planned No. Project permitted Area (lakh (lakh acres) acres) 2. Almatti Nil 4.13" On a conjoint reading of the aforesaid averments in paras 66(ii) and (iii) and para 68(a)(2), it becomes at once clear that the real grievance of the plaintiff State is of storage and utilisation of additional 11 TMC water at Almatti Dam by raising the height up to 524.256 m. which would result in the irrigation of planned area of 4.13 lakh acres. Under these circumstances, therefore, in our view as at present advised if the height of Almatti Dam is fixed at FRL 519m, it would meet the requirements not only of the plaintiff State but also meet the present requirement of defendant no.1 State and also would not fall foul on the opinion of the Expert Committee as well as on the clearance given by the Central Water Commission to Stage II of the UKP Project, as seen earlier. (18) IN this connection, it is also interesting to note what defendant no.1 State of Karnataka has to say in connection with its report regarding UKP Stage II. In compilation II of the relevant documents filed by the State of Andhra Pradesh, we find a copy of that report at page 98 in connection with the minimum almatti FRL required. The report reads as under: "The minimum Almatti FRL required to get 173 TMC utilisation is found to be 518.7 m. The reservoir operation tables for Almatti reservoir for the years 1950-51 to 1988-89 with FRL 518.7 m. and the corresponding operation tables for Narayanpur Reservoir for the same period are enclosed after the end of Table 6. It is seen that there are only 7 failure years in a period of 39 years, which are less than 25 of the total number of years of operation." It must, therefore, be held while answering issue no. 9(a) that there is really no dispute between the plaintiff State and defendant no.1 State that construction of Almatti Dam with at least an FRL 519.6 m. will meet the requirement of defendant no.1 State on the one hand and also the grievance of the plaintiff State on the other hand. In other words, construction of Almatti Dam with an FRL of 524.256 may not be feasible or permissible at this stage looking to the allocation of gross quantity of water to Karnataka State as per Scheme "A" on the basis of 75 dependable availability of water per each water year as decided upon by the Tribunal. Any increase of the height beyond FRL 519m. may depend upon further allotment of water to Karnataka State by any subsequent decision of the Tribunal, as and when constituted, as that would depend upon the implementation of proposed Scheme "B" which up till now has not been elevated to the status of a binding decision of any Water Disputes Tribunal. (19) WHEN we turn to issue no.9 (b), we find that it assumes that construction of a dam within the territory of Karnataka requires consent of other riparian States. This assumption by itself cannot be sustained for the simple reason that every riparian State within its own territory can construct a dam as required by it. (19) WHEN we turn to issue no.9 (b), we find that it assumes that construction of a dam within the territory of Karnataka requires consent of other riparian States. This assumption by itself cannot be sustained for the simple reason that every riparian State within its own territory can construct a dam as required by it. The grievance of other riparian States would arise only if such construction is likely to affect the available water flow of inter-state river as available to it by any adjudication of the Tribunal or if it raises a dispute in this connection to be adjudicated upon by any future Tribunal. The absolute assumption in the issue that State of Karnataka cannot be permitted to proceed with construction of dam without consent of other riparian States, therefore, cannot be accepted and will have to be considered subject to the aforesaid rider. (20) SO far as the second assumption is concerned, the approval of the Central Government will be required under the federal setup as and when any project is to be construCTEd in Karnataka State. It has to get clearance from appropriate statutory and executive authorities. It cannot, therefore, be assumed that State of Karnataka would proceed with the construction of such dam without approval of the Central Government. In fact the evidence on record has shown that it has already approached the Central Government for necessary approval. Issue no.9(b) is answered accordingly. ISSUE NO. 9(c): (21) THE aforesaid conclusion of ours would answer issue no.9(a) between the plaintiff State and the defendant no. 1 State being the main contesting States. However, before this conclusion is reached inter paries, plaintiff and the defendant No.1 as aforestated, the grievance of defendant no.3 State OF MAHARASTRA also has to be kept in view in connection with permissible height of Almatti Dam. Learned senior counsel Shri Andhyarujina for the State OF MAHARASTRA- defendant no.3 herein, vehemently contended that if the height of Almatti Dam to be construCTEd by the State of Karnataka is allowed to go beyond 519 m. FRL which is cleared by the Central Water Commission there is a likelihood of submergence of number of villages OF MAHARASTRA State by way of back effect of water colleCTEd at that dam. He frankly stated that this contention was not raised before the Tribunal as the Tribunal had not considered the question of clearance of any height of Almatti Dam. But after the filing of the present suit, on further enquiry and material gathered by it, it is seen that there is a possibility of such submergence. Now so far as this grievance is concerned, in the compilation MAH-2 furnished by the State OF MAHARASTRA, the following relevant averments have been made at paras 1.8 and 1.9 as under: "1.8. As the raising of the height of the Almatti which is the subject of controversy in Suit No.2 of 1997 was kept in abeyance, the State OF MAHARASTRA did not desire to precipitate a sensitive issue having larger consequences. 1.9. In July 1998, the Government OF MAHARASTRA took up the question of likely submergence of the territory OF MAHARASTRA with the State of Karnataka and the Union Water Resources Ministry and concerned Union Government Agencies. By that time, the State OF MAHARASTRA was able to carry out on its own a preliminary survey which showed that with Almatti FRL/MWL RL 524.256 m. there would be submergence OF MAHARASTRAs territory to an extent of 5 to 6 meters depth (16 to 20 feet depth). This submergence would further increase during the floods. Therefore, State of MAHARASTRA requested Karnataka by its letter dated 27/7/1998, for an immediate stoppage of all further construction at Almatti Dam and specially the installation of gates and any storage against the gates to ensure that no territory OF MAHARASTRA was submerged. It also asked for a written guarantee from Karnataka State that it would not install radial gates at Almatti and/or store water unless the matters of submergence of and likely damages to the structures in the territory OF MAHARASTRA, were discussed and settled with the MAHARASTRA State to its entire satisfaction. It also asked for a written guarantee from Karnataka State that it would not install radial gates at Almatti and/or store water unless the matters of submergence of and likely damages to the structures in the territory OF MAHARASTRA, were discussed and settled with the MAHARASTRA State to its entire satisfaction. The State of Karnataka was also informed that in the event of non receipt of written assurance, the State OF MAHARASTRA would be compelled to approach the Honorable Supreme COURt and seek judicial intervention for a total stoppage of all construction work at the Almatti Dam and prevent storage of water above crest level RL 509.00m." At para 1.13 at page 73 the stand of the State OF MAHARASTRA is stated as disclosed from the correspondence exchanged between the parties:- "(a) The level of Krishna river near the MAHARASTRA Karnataka border is less than RL 519.00 m. compared to FRL RL of 524.256 m. at Almatti and FRL RL 524.87 m. at Hippargi, with the result there will be submergence in MAHARASTRA to the extent of 5 to 6 meters. (b) No actual field surveys have so far been undertaken by Karnataka to assess the magnitude and extent of submergence in MAHARASTRA. Karnataka has now stated that such surveys would be done by Karnataka only from April 1999. (c) None of the Central Government agencies have so far technically examined the submergence aspect in MAHARASTRA due to Almatti Dam with FRL RL 524.256 m. (d) For Almatti Dam, with crest level RL 509.016 and FRL RL 524.256, none of the technical aspects such as Maximum design flood spillway adequacy, number and size of gates, siltation and its effects upstream in MAHARASTRA, flood routing, reservoir operation schedules etc., have so far been examined or certified as correct and acceptable by the Central Water Commission. All these aspects materially affect and influence the extent of submergence in MAHARASTRA." At para 1.14 at page 75 it has been averred as under :- "It is now learnt that the State of Karnataka now proposes to weld skin plates on the frame work of radial gates. This will now complete the erection of the gates and raise the height of the Almatti Dam to FRL RL 524.256 m. Raising of the FRL RL to 524.256 m. of the dam will submerge territories in MAHARASTRA. This will now complete the erection of the gates and raise the height of the Almatti Dam to FRL RL 524.256 m. Raising of the FRL RL to 524.256 m. of the dam will submerge territories in MAHARASTRA. The State of Karnataka has not been given any right to submerge any States territories by the Krishna Water Dispute Tribunal." When we turn to I.A.No.8 of 1999 filed by the State OF MAHARASTRA for grant of leave to file additional written statement, we find the following pertinent observations at page 6 at para 1.2. The same read as under: "After it filed its Written Statement, a detailed study by MAHARASTRA of the documents, records, project reports and answers to interlocutories etc. filed in OS 1 and OS 2 of 1997 by the States of Karnataka and Andhra Pradesh revealed for the first time that the territory of the State OF MAHARASTRA was likely to be submerged by the State of Karnataka by constructing the Almatti Dam with FRL RL 524.256 m. and Hippargi Barrage with FRL RL 524.87 m. and would result in displacement of population from several villages and a few towns in MAHARASTRA. There was also likelihood of enormous damage to private and public properties and works and structures including archeological structures and pilgrimage places as hereinafter stated in para 5 below. There would also be disruption of communications, enhanced distress and damages during floods each year due to sedimentation and reduction of existing river channels capacities, flattening of bed gradients, change in the already fragile river regime near the border of the two States and increased flood depTHS and durations and consequent distress every year." Similar submissions are found at page 34 of the additional written statement filed by the State OF MAHARASTRA. Statement no.1 captioned as list of villages from MAHARASTRA State likely to be effeCTEd by floods due to Almatti Dam (in Karnataka State) with FRL RL 524.256 m., has mentioned list of 58 villages covered by the Krishna river basin. Statement no.1 captioned as list of villages from MAHARASTRA State likely to be effeCTEd by floods due to Almatti Dam (in Karnataka State) with FRL RL 524.256 m., has mentioned list of 58 villages covered by the Krishna river basin. (22) THE aforesaid grievance of the State OF MAHARASTRA, which is defendant no.3, against defendant no.1 is really a dispute between the two defendants and does not project any dispute qua the plaintiff State, but even proceeding on the basis that suit under Article 131 is a comprehensive one and seeks to resolve the simmering disputes between all the contesting States which are the riparian States situated in inter-State river Krishna basin and not applying the strict yardstick of a suit before an ordinary civil COURt, we have to appreciate the real grievance voiced by the State of Maharasthra against the height of Almatti Dam. It centers around the height of 524.256 m. Any height beyond 519 m. and going up to 524.256 m., according to the State of Maharasthra, is likely to submerge its villages though being a possibility and not a real certainty. So far as this grievance is concerned, therefore, it can be safely assumed that defendant no.3s grievance is really confined to a remote and unascertained possibility of submergence of its villages if the height of Almatti Dam was more than 519 m. and reaches 524.256 m. Grievance about height of 524.256 m. is also voiced by the plaintiff State of Andhra Pradesh, though for different reasons. It can, therefore, safely be assumed that, as at present advised, the height of Almatti Dam if permitted up to 519 m. will not pose any real problem to the plaintiff State on the one hand or to defendant no.3 State on the other and will also serve the present need of defendant No.1 State regarding storage of sufficient water at Almatti Dam in the light of binding decision of Scheme "A". In other words, the height of 519 m. appears to be not in serious dispute amongst all the three riparian States located in Krishna river basin and if this height is permitted to be maintained at Almatti Dam that would also not go against the opinion of Central Water Commission on the one hand and the Expert Committees opinion of the four Chief Ministers on the other. (23) BUT leaving aside this aspect of the grievance of the State of Maharasthra, it may be mentioned that the dispute sought to be raised by defendant no.3 State OF MAHARASTRA is against defendant no.1 State, namely, State of Karnataka regarding any increase in the height of Almatti Dam beyond 519 m. or for that matter beyond 512 m which, according to learned senior counsel Shri Andhyarujina for the State of Maharasthra, can be the permissible height and which would have no adverse effect of submergence in the MAHARASTRA territory. However, this dispute cannot be resolved in the present proceedings for the simple reason that it would assume the charaCTEr of a water dispute as we will presently see. Water dispute as contemplated by Article 262 has been defined by Section 2(c) of the Disputes Act, as extraCTEd earlier. It means any dispute or difference between two or more State Governments regarding use, distribution or control of waters of, or in, any inter-State river or river valley. Raising of the height of Almatti Dam beyond the level of 512 m. would entitle the State of Karnataka to control waters of river Krishna which is an inter-State river and if this type of control of the Krishna water by defendant no.1 State is likely to submerge villages OF MAHARASTRA State, which is an upper riparian State, by back-effect, it would clearly fall within the definition of "water dispute as found in Section 2(c)(i). That would immediately attract Section 3 (a) which deals with complaints by State Governments as to water disputes. It provides that: "3. That would immediately attract Section 3 (a) which deals with complaints by State Governments as to water disputes. It provides that: "3. Complaints by State Governments as to water disputes- If it appears to the Government of any State that a water dispute with the Government of another State has arisen or is likely to arise by reason of the fact that the interests of the State, or of any of the inhabitants thereof, in the waters of an inter-State river or river valley have been, or are likely to be, affeCTEd prejudicially by (a) any executive action or legislation taken or passed, or proposed to be taken or passed, by the other State; or xxxx xxx xxxx It becomes clear that the MAHARASTRA State, namely, defendant no.3, apprehends that because of the executive action of defendant No.1 State contemplating raising of height of Almatti Dam at 524.256 m, the defendant no.3 State or its inhabitants are likely to be prejudiced by submergence of its villages and the lands occupied by residents therein. Thus on a conjoint reading of Section 2(c)(i) and Section 3 (a) of the Disputes Act such a grievance voiced by defendant no.3 State against defendant no.1 would consequently fall within the forecorners of the Disputes Act enaCTEd by the Legislature under Article 262. Once that conclusion is reached the result becomes obvious. This type of grievance and dispute cannot be adjudicated upon by us under Article 131 and it is for the MAHARASTRA State if so advised to raise such a dispute which earlier it did not raise, by filing an appropriate complaint under Section 3 of the Disputes Act before the Central Government and once that happens Section 4 of the Act would be automatically attraCTEd. It provides as under: "4. Constitution of Tribunal- (1) When any request under Section 3 is received from any State Government in respect of any water dispute and the Central Government is of opinion that the water dispute cannot be settled by negotiations, the Central Government shall, by notification in the Official Gazette, constitute a Water Disputes Tribunal for the adjudication of the water dispute. Constitution of Tribunal- (1) When any request under Section 3 is received from any State Government in respect of any water dispute and the Central Government is of opinion that the water dispute cannot be settled by negotiations, the Central Government shall, by notification in the Official Gazette, constitute a Water Disputes Tribunal for the adjudication of the water dispute. [(2) The Tribunal shall consist of a Chairman and two other members nominated in this behalf by the Chief Justice of India from among persons who at the time of such nomination are Judges of the Supreme COURt or of a High COURt.] (3) The Tribunal may appoint two or more persons as assessors to advise it in the proceeding before it." Thus the grievance about submergence raised by defendant no.3 State squarely falls within the scope of water dispute between defendant no. 3 State and defendant no,1 State. For its resolution, adjudication by the Tribunal is the only way out. It is not in dispute between the parties that such a water dispute was never got adjudicated upon by KWDT. In other words, it remains an open dispute calling for its adjudication. It cannot be considered by us under Article 131. In fact in the statement of case of the State OF MAHARASTRA defendant no.3 herein before the Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal, which is annexed as MRK-I, the State OF MAHARASTRA itself has considered such a grievance as a part of "water dispute. It cannot be considered by us under Article 131. In fact in the statement of case of the State OF MAHARASTRA defendant no.3 herein before the Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal, which is annexed as MRK-I, the State OF MAHARASTRA itself has considered such a grievance as a part of "water dispute. In para (k) in the reliefs sought by the State of Maharasthra from the Water Tribunal it was submitted as under: "(k) That for the purpose of giving effect to the decision of this Honourable Tribunal all directions may be given and orders passed which are usual and proper in a final determination of an inter-States River Water Dispute including a direction that the water shall not be used in any project which will have the effect of submerging the territory of any other State except with the prior consent of, and prior agreement on the adequate compensation for the damage to the concerned State if it has consented to a part of its territory being submerged." It is, of COURse, true that though the defendant no.3 State considered the question of submergence as a part of water dispute to be resolved by the Tribunal, the Tribunal did not consider the question of submergence of villages in the territory of defendant no.3 State because of the height of almatti Dam. It has, therefore, remained a simmering dispute between the defendant no.3 State and defendant no. 1. It, therefore, requires to be adjudicated upon by a competent Tribunal as noted earlier. It is axiomatic that crucial question for determination under Section 3 of the Disputes Act is whether the interest of the State OF MAHARASTRA or of any of its inhabitants in Krishna river valley will be prejudiced by the executive action of another riparian State, like the defendant No.1. The State is one integral unit and its interest includes the wellbeing of its inhabitants within its territory including areas outside the river basin. Therefore, under the Inter-State Water Disputes Act, 1956 the relevant consideration is the interest of the State as a whole and all its inhabitants and not merely the interest of the basin areas of the State. The State is one integral unit and its interest includes the wellbeing of its inhabitants within its territory including areas outside the river basin. Therefore, under the Inter-State Water Disputes Act, 1956 the relevant consideration is the interest of the State as a whole and all its inhabitants and not merely the interest of the basin areas of the State. Consequently, it must be held that the dispute regarding the apprehended submergence of villages OF MAHARASTRA State by raising of the height of Almatti Dam by State of Karnataka beyond 519.m is an unresolved water dispute which cannot be considered by us under Article 131 and we have to relegate respondent no.3 State to filing of an appropriate complaint under Section 3 of the Disputes Act before the Central Government, if so advised, if in the mean time no amicable agreement or settlement of the dispute interse between defendant no.3 State and defendant no.1 State is arrived at. (24) NOW, let us take stock of the situation. As we have seen earlier, there is no real dispute amongst the three States up to the height of 519 m. of Almatti Dam. We can, therefore, while answering issue nos.9(a) and (b) safely hold that, as at present advised and as the evidence stands on record, construction of almatti Dam with an FRL 524.256 together with all other projects executed and in progress and contemplated by the Karnataka State cannot be granted nor can the Karnataka State be permitted to construct up to that height without the consent of all other riparian States as well as without the approval of the Central Government. However, this will be subject to the rider that there cannot be any objection to permitting the State of Karnataka defendant no.1 to construct Almatti Dam up to a height of 519 m. for which, as already discussed, there is no real dispute amongst the parties. However, even this much indulgence granted to defendant no.1 State will be subject to the following safeguards and riders : (25) EVEN while defendant no.1 State proposes to construct the Almatti Dam up to FRL 519 m. it will be subject to clearance by all other competent authorities functioning under different Statutes. However, even this much indulgence granted to defendant no.1 State will be subject to the following safeguards and riders : (25) EVEN while defendant no.1 State proposes to construct the Almatti Dam up to FRL 519 m. it will be subject to clearance by all other competent authorities functioning under different Statutes. Requisite clearance will be required by defendant no.1 State for raising the height of the dam even up to 519 m. (26) IN particular, such clearance will have to be obtained under the Environment Protection Act, 1986 and from the Ministry of Forests & Environment, Govt. of India in this connection. (27) APPROPRIATE clearance will also have to be obtained from the Central Water Commission for raising the height up to 519 m. (28) THE aforesaid permission/clearance to raise the height of 519 m. by this order will also subject to any further directions if any, obtained by the disputant States concerned from any future Water Disputes Tribunal which may be constituted by the Central Government on the complaint raised by any of the disputant States, including the State OF MAHARASTRA defendant no.3 herein. The interim relief granted by this COURt pending hearing of the present suit will stand modified to the effect that the State of Karnataka, subject to the aforesaid clearance of the authorities, can raise the height of the Almatti Dam up to 519 m., as at present advised. (29) THE raising of further height of Almatti Dam beyond 519m. will obviously abide by the decision, if any, obtained in future from appropriate Water Disputes Tribunal constituted under the Disputes Act on complaints raised by any of the three disputant States before us and also after getting clearance from the Tribunal and all other competent authorities. The question of raising the height of Almatti Dam beyond 519m. will also fall for consideration Tribunal after 31st may, 2000 when Scheme "A" will come up for review as already direCTEd by the KWDT in its Reports PK-I & PK-II. It will also have to be considered in the light of proposed Scheme "B" which may fall for consideration of appropriate water Disputes Tribunal in future if complaints in this connection are raised by any of the contesting States before the Central Government. (30) ISSUE nos. 9(a), (b) and (c) are answered as aforesaid. (31) ORIGINAL Suit No.2 of 1997 will stand disposed off as indicated above. (30) ISSUE nos. 9(a), (b) and (c) are answered as aforesaid. (31) ORIGINAL Suit No.2 of 1997 will stand disposed off as indicated above. In the facts and circumstances of the case there will be no order as to costs. (32) PATTANAIK, J. - River Krishna originates in the State OF MAHARASTRA and flows down through the State of Karnataka and State of Andhra Pradesh and meets the Bay of Bengal in Andhra Pradesh. It has got several tributaries and in the preindependence era, there was not much dispute between the then States for sharing water of any inter-State river. Even then, when large-scale projects were taken up in one State, the other riparian States were apprehensive of getting their share of water from the river and it is in this context, for sharing the water of Tungabhadra, another river in Krishna basin, there was an agreement in 1944, settling the dispute concerning the share dras. The States went on planning for erection of big projects for proper utilization of the waters of Krishna basin and in July, 1951, a memorandum of agreement had been drawn up for apportionment of the available supply of Krishna river system among the four riparian States namely, States of Bombay, Hyderabad, Madras and Mysore. It appears that the said memorandum of agreement had been drawn up to remain valid for a period of 25 years and even at that point of time, the State of Mysore refused to ratify the agreement. After implementation of the recommendations of the States Reorganisation Act, in the year 1956, the Krishna basin came to be controlled by the States of Bombay, Mysore and Andhra Pradesh, which became the riparian States. Each of these States became active for exercising their right share over the water of Krishna valley and the Central Water and Power Commission had drawn up a scheme for reallocation of the Krishna water. That however was not acceptable to the States and no agreement between the States could be reached. Whenever any of the riparian State would come up with major projects, the other States would object to the same. By undertaking the conraised in relation to Nagarjunasagar and Srisailam projects in Andhra Pradesh as well as Koyna project in MAHARASTRA. That however was not acceptable to the States and no agreement between the States could be reached. Whenever any of the riparian State would come up with major projects, the other States would object to the same. By undertaking the conraised in relation to Nagarjunasagar and Srisailam projects in Andhra Pradesh as well as Koyna project in MAHARASTRA. The Central Government, in 1963 had taken a decision to clear up the pending new projects on the basis that the withdrawal of water by the States OF MAHARASTRA, Mysore and Andhra Pradesh should not exceed 400, 600 and 800 T.M.C. respectively. This decision of the Central Government was not acceptable to the State OF MAHARASTRA and in June, 1963, the MAHARASTRA Government had requested the Govt. of India for making a reference of the disputes to a Tri- 1969, the Central Government tried their best to resolve the disputes between the riparian. States to it received more number of applications for reference of the dispute in the years 1968 and 1969. Then again, on account of reorganisation of the States and redistribution of the Tungabhadra Valley itself between the States of Mysore and Andhra Pradesh, disputes also arose concerning the validity of the earlier Tungabhadra agreement and the control and distribution of Tungabhadra water. The State of Karnataka is the successor State of State of Mysore. Finally on 10th of April, 1969, Government of India constituted the Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal and called upon the Tribunal for adjudication of the water disputes regarding the inter-State river Krishna and the river valley thereof. The Tribunal was constituted under Section 4 of the Inter-State Water Disputes Act, 1956 (hereinafter referred to as 'the Act'), which Act has been enaCTEd by the Parliament in exercise of powers conferred under Article 262 of the Constitution of India. The said Tribunal on consideration of the materials placed before it, investigated into the matters referred to it and forwarded a report to the Central Government, setting out the facts found by it and giving its decisions of the matters referred to it, on 24th of December, 1973, under Section 5(2) of the Act. The said Tribunal on consideration of the materials placed before it, investigated into the matters referred to it and forwarded a report to the Central Government, setting out the facts found by it and giving its decisions of the matters referred to it, on 24th of December, 1973, under Section 5(2) of the Act. On receipt of the said report and the decision, the Government of India as well as the three riparian States namely state OF MAHARASTRA, Karnataka and Andhra Pradesh made references to the Tribunal for further consideration under Section 5(3) of the Act and the Tribunal on consideration of those references submitted its further report giving such explanations or guidance, as the Tribunal deemed fit on the matters referred to it under Section 5(3) on 27th of May, 1976. It may be stated that the original report dated 24th of December, 1973 contained the Final Order of the Tribunal and the further report dated 27th of May, 1976 also contained the modified Final Order, which modification was necessary because of explanations given to references made by different States under Section 5(3) of the Act. The Central Government construed the aforesaid Final Order to be the decision of the Tribunal and accordingly, published the same in the Extraordinary Gazette dated 31st of May, 1976 and on such publication, the said Final Order has statutorily become final and binding on the parties to the dispute. (33) IN the Report of the Tribunal as well as in the further Report, submitted by the Tribunal, two Schemes have been evolved Scheme "A" and Scheme "B". On the basis of agreement between all the States, the availability of water in Krishna basin was found out at 2060 T.M.C. on 75 dependability. The Tribunal under Scheme "A" made the mass allocation in favour of three riparian States of the dependable flow at 75 which had been arrived at 2060 T.M.C., indicating that the State OF MAHARASTRA shall not use in any water year more than 560 T.M.C., the State of Karnataka shall not use in any water year more than 700 T.M.C. and the State of andhra Pradesh shall not use more than 800 T.M.C in any water year. It had also indicated that the State of andhra Pradesh which is the last riparian owner, will be at liberty to use the remaining water that may be flowing in the river Krishna but by such user the State shall not acquire any right whatsoever in respect of the excess quantity, which it uses beyond the allotted quantity of 800 T.M.C. It is to be stated that in COURse of the proceedings before the Tribunal, several schemes had been submitted by the States for the examination of the Tribunal and the Tribunal considered all such schemes and had finally evolved the Scheme "A". On 4th of May, 1973, all the three States submitted their views under the signature of their respective counsel on the method of allocation to be adopted by the Tribunal which was marked before the Tribunal as Exhibit MRK-340 and under that document the parties had called upon the Tribunal not only to have mass allocation of utilisable dependable flow at 75 but also for allocation on percentage basis in surplus as well as deficit years of flow and restrictions with regard to the use and the nature of such restrictions was to be decided by the Tribunal. It also called upon the Tribunal to have a joint control body to monitor the said allocation on percentage basis in surplus as well as deficit years of flow. For giving effect to the allocation on percentage basis in surplus as well as deficit years of flow, the Tribunal evolved the Scheme "B" and indicated the same in its original report as well as in its further report. But for proper implementation of Scheme "B", the constitution of the Krishna Valley Authority was absolutely necessary and the State of Andhra Pradesh not having agreed for constitution of the controlling authority, the Tribunal did not make Scheme "B" as part of its Final Order though the said Scheme "B" was a part of its original report as well as the further report and thought it fit to leave the matter either to the good sense of the rival States or for the Parliament to make a legislation to that effect under Entry 56 of List I of the Seventh Schedule to the Constitution. The State of Karnataka however being of the opinion that Scheme "B" having formed a part of the decision of the Tribunal was also required to be notified by the Central Government under Section 6 of the Act, making it binding on the parties, and the same not having been done, filed the present suit on 1st of March, 1997, impleading the State of Andhra Pradesh, the State OF MAHARASTRA and the Union of India as party defendants, invoking the jurisdiction of this COURt under Article 131 of the Constitution, seeking relief for a decree that the surplus water in river Krishna i.e., in excess of 2060 TMC at 75 dependability be shared in accordance with the determinations and directions of the Tribunal, contained in its report and further report and ; a declaration that defendant No. 1 State of andhra Pradesh is not entitled to insist on its right to use the surplus water i.e., in excess of 2060 TMC at 75 dependability, so long as Scheme "B" framed by the Tribunal is not fully implemented and a mandatory injunction to the defendant No. 3 Union of India to notify Scheme "B" framed by the Tribunal and make provisions for establishment of a Krishna Valley Authority for implementation of the directions of the Tribunal in its Report and Further Report. The State of Karnataka has also prayed for an order of injunction, restraining defendant No. 1 from continuing to execute several other projects like Telugu Ganga, Srisailam Right Bank Canal, Srisailam Left Bank Canal, Bheema Lift Irrigation and Pulichintala Projects, until Scheme "B" framed by the Tribunal is effectively implemented. The cause of action indicated in the plaint is the refusal of defendant Nos. 1 and 2 to consent to the sharing of surplus waters in excess of 2060 TMC and for implementation of Scheme "B". (34) ACCORDING to the assertions made in the plaint, the dispute centres round the interpretation 'scope and extent of the decision of the Tribunal, and particularly Clause V (c) thereof as well as the refusal of the first defendant for implementation of Scheme "B" drawn up by the Tribunal and the further claim of the State of Andhra Pradesh to use the surplus water in excess of 2060 T.M.C. by constructing large-scale permanent projects. The plaintiff, State of Karnataka in its plaint, broadly referred to the adjudication made by the Tribunal, indicating therein that the Tribunal considered the question of allocation of 2060 T.M.C., which in turn was determined on the basis of 75 dependable flow of river Krishna up to Vijaywada and allocated to the three States OF MAHARASTRA, Karnataka and Andhra Pradesh for their beneficial use to the extent provided in Clause V i.e. not more than 560 T.M.C., 700 T.M.C and 800 T.M.C. respectively. It was also averred in the plaint that the Tribunal was of the opinion that for fuller utilisation of water of river Krishna, provisions would be made both for surplus and deficit years and accordingly, evolved Scheme "B" but since constitution of the Krishna Valley Authority was the back-bone of the aforesaid Scheme "B" and the State of Andhra Pradesh did not agree for the setting up of the said Krishna Valley Authority, the Tribunal left the question of enforcement of such scheme to the good sense of the parties or the wisdom of Parliament. The State of Karnataka has also averred that clarificatory applications were filed before the Tribunal under Section 5(3) of the Act in respect of Scheme "B" and the Tribunal did entertain the same and did answer the clarifications sought for by giving explanations and or modifications to the original scheme and, therefore, the Tribunal itself accepted the position that Scheme "B" contained in the original report is also a decision of the Tribunal which could be clarified or explained on an application being filed under Section 5(3) of the Act. The plaint then, narrates as to how in the further report dated 27th of May, 1976, the Tribunal investigated into and determined the shares of respective States in the surplus flows in excess of 2060 T.M.C. and how ultimately a comprehensive Scheme "B" was drawn up for fuller and better utilisation of all the waters in every water year and yet the same could not be given effect to as the Tribunal thought it improper to constitute an authority in the absence of agreement between all the riparian States. It is in this context the Tribunal had observed that it is unwise and impracticable to impose an administrative authority by a judicial decree without the unanimous consent and approval of the parties. It is in this context the Tribunal had observed that it is unwise and impracticable to impose an administrative authority by a judicial decree without the unanimous consent and approval of the parties. According to the plaintiff, since Scheme "B" provided for a fuller and better utilisation of the water of river Krishna, which the Tribunal has itself evolved after deeply pondering over the matter, the same must be held to be a decision of the Tribunal, required to be published by the Union Government under Section 6 of the Act and since the parties had not agreed for constitution of an authority when the Tribunal gave its further report, it could not be made a part of the Final Order. But according to the plaintiff, Section 6(A) having been inserted into the Act, enabling the Central Government to frame Scheme or Schemes to give effect to the decision of the Tribunal including establishment of an authority, there exists no legal impediment for enforcing the said Scheme "B" and appropriate directions could be given by the COURt to the Central Government for constituting the authority and give full effect to the Scheme "B". The plaintiff also averred in the plaint how from time to time the State of Karnataka had been requesting the State of Andhra Pradesh as well as the Union Government for implementation of Scheme "B" and how the said State of Andhra Pradesh, defendant No. 1 has refused to agree for implementation of Scheme "B". (35) THE defendant No. 1, State of Andhra Pradesh in the written statement filed, took the preliminary objection that the adjudication sought for by the plaintiff is itself a water dispute and, therefore, the suit under Article 131 is barred in view of the mandate under Article 262 of the Constitution read with Section 11 of the Inter-state Water Disputes Act. The further stand taken by defendant No. 1 is that it is only the Scheme "A" which can be held to be the decision of the Tribunal which comes into operation on the date of publication of the same under Section 6 of the Act and whatever the Tribunal has observed in relation to framing of Scheme "B", the same is merely tentative and obiter observation and cannot be held to be a part of the decision of the Tribunal and as such is unenforceable. It has also been averred that the Tribunal itself having indicated that the Scheme "B" could be implemented either by agreement of the parties or by legislation by the Parliament and the parties having not agreed to , the COURt would not be competent to direct the Parliament to have a legislation and, therefore, the relief sought for cannot be granted in the suit. It has been further averred that in view of Clause V(c) of the Final Order, which has been notified in the Official Gazette, the State of Andhra Pradesh is entitled to use any water, which may be flowing in the river Krishna, so that the same would not be wasted by entering the sea and, therefore, the prayer for injuncting the State of Andhra Pradesh in going ahead with several projects is not entertainable. The defendant No. 1 further asserts that Scheme "A" having been aCTEd upon by the parties for over two decades and under the said Scheme review having been provided for after 31 st of May, 2000, the question of implementation of Scheme "B" at this length of time is not only inequitable but also wholly uncalled for. While refuting the assertion made in different paragraphs of the plaint, it has been reiterated that Scheme "B" never formed part of the decision and as such question of its implementation does not arise and further Section 6(A) of the Act not being there on the statute book on the date the report of the Tribunal was published, the same is not relevant in the context. According to Defendant No. 1, the plaintiff has attempted to raise an imaginary dispute in an attempt to invoke the jurisdiction of this Hon'ble COURt so that the attention of all concerned is diverted from the illegal projects continued to be executed by it contrary to the decision of the Tribunal and the suit lacks bona fides. It has also been averred that the socalled Scheme "B" was merely a tentative one and without its back-bone namely the constitution of the Monitoring Authority called Krishna Valley Authority, it cannot be held to be a Final decision of the Tribunal having any binding effects. It has also been averred that the socalled Scheme "B" was merely a tentative one and without its back-bone namely the constitution of the Monitoring Authority called Krishna Valley Authority, it cannot be held to be a Final decision of the Tribunal having any binding effects. So far as different projects undertaken by the State of andhra Pradesh, it has been averred that under the tripartite agreement even before the Final decision of the Tribunal, the plaintiff voluntarily agreed for supply of 15 TMC of drinking water to Madras, which is the Telugu Ganga Project and, therefore, the plaintiff's objection on this score is baseless and frivolous. In respect of other projects objeCTEd to by the plaintiff, it has been averred that the Tribunal itself has granted the liberty to the State of andhra Pradesh to utilise the excess water flowing in river Krishna and, therefore, there has been no infraction of the said liberty granted by the Tribunal. It has also been further averred that the Tribunal in its further report having adopted Scheme "A" as its Final decision, it is only that Scheme which is binding on the parties and whatever has been stated as Scheme "B" is not the decision of the Tribunal. (36) THE State OF MAHARASTRA, defendant No. 2 also had taken the stand that the suit for directing implementation of Scheme "B" is not maintainable inasmuch as the implementation of the same depends upon the consent of the States and the COURt cannot force the States for giving its consent nor can the COURt direct the Parliament to have a legislation for the same. The defendant no. 2 however agreed with the State of Karnataka so far as the allegation of appropriation of the remaining water of the river Krishna in a permanent way by constructing projects like Telugu Ganga, Srisailam RBC, Srisailam LBC, Bhima Lift and Pulichintala by the State of Andhra Pradesh, defendant no. 1. The positive stand of the State OF MAHARASTRA is that until and unless a chain of carry over reservoirs in entire Krishna basin are ereCTEd, the question of implementation of Scheme "B" would not arise and since the said carry over reservoir have not been construCTEd as yet, the prayer for implementation of Scheme "B" is premature. 1. The positive stand of the State OF MAHARASTRA is that until and unless a chain of carry over reservoirs in entire Krishna basin are ereCTEd, the question of implementation of Scheme "B" would not arise and since the said carry over reservoir have not been construCTEd as yet, the prayer for implementation of Scheme "B" is premature. The said defendant also averred that the relief sought for is essentially a review of the Final Order and there were no circumstances justifying the prayer for implementation of Scheme "B", particularly, when a review is provided after 31st of May, 2000, which is quite near. The State OF MAHARASTRA defendant no. 2 reiterates the stand of the Andhra Pradesh, defendant no. 1 to the effect that it is the Tribunal's decision in term of Scheme "A", which is final and binding order on all States and not the framing of Scheme "B" contained in the report of the said Tribunal. (37) UNION of India, Defendant No.3, in its written statement took the stand that the suit as framed is not maintainable by virtue of Section 11 of the Act read with Article 262 of the Constitution. So far as the user of water by the State of andhra Pradesh is concerned, the Union Government contends that the award having set out in gross the quantity of water which could be used in a given water year by MAHARASTRA and Karnataka and Andhra Pradesh with the liberty to Andhra Pradesh to use the surplus water, the said liberty does not confer or create any right in the State of andhra Pradesh and such user would be subject to right of upper riparian States namely MAHARASTRA and Karnataka. The Union Government further asserts that the award does not give a project-wise allocation but does the gross allocation and each of the state is bound to give effect to the award given by the Tribunal. On the averments of the other paragraph of the plaint, the Union Government has indicated that the same are all matter of record and do not require any further elucidation. (38) ON the pleadings of the parties the following issues have been framed: "1. Whether the suit is barred by Article 262(2) of the Constitution read with Section 11 of the Inter-State Water Disputes Act, 1956?(A.P.) 2. (38) ON the pleadings of the parties the following issues have been framed: "1. Whether the suit is barred by Article 262(2) of the Constitution read with Section 11 of the Inter-State Water Disputes Act, 1956?(A.P.) 2. Whether the suit is liable to be dismissed as not disclosing cause of Action? (A.P.) 3. Whether the suit is liable to be dismissed as seeking relief which are contrary to the Report and Decision of the KWDT?(A.P.) 4. What is the "decision" of the KWDT binding on the parties under Section 6 of the Act in relation to:- (a) Scheme 'B' (b) Use of surplus water as contemplated in Clause (V)(c) read with Clause XIV(A) of the Award, 5. Whether reference to Scheme 'B' in the 1st and the further report of the KWDT, disclose a complete scheme, and whether such scheme is capable of implementation at this stage, in view of circumstances referred to in para 11 of the preliminary objections and para 1 of the parawise reply in the written Statement of Andhra Pradesh?(A.P.) 6. Is it just, fair and equitable to implement Scheme 'B' at this stage?(MAH). 7. Whether in view of the fact that Scheme'B' does not form part of the "Final Order" of KWDT in the original report under Section 5(2) and the further Report under Section 5(3) of the Act, the suit seeking the implementation of Scheme 'B' is maintainable?(A.P.) 8. Whether insertion of Section 6A in 1980 in the ISWD Act, 1956, ipso facto entitles Karnataka to seek implementation of Scheme 'B' as referred to in the reports of the Tribunal by framing a scheme? (KAR - as modified by A. P.) (c) Srisailam Left Bank Canal (d) Bhima Lift Irrigation (e) Pulichintala Diversion 12. Is not the suit of the Plaintiff unnecessary and premature as there can be review of the orders of the Tribunal after A.D.2000?(MAH) 13. To what reliefs, if any, the Plaintiff is entitled to? (A.P,)" ISSUES 4.5&7. 9. Whether the right of Andhra Pradesh to utilise surplus waters in terms of the liberty granted by the decisions of the Tribunal, is reviewable in the present proceedings?(A.P.) 10. Whether the liberty to use surplus water under the decision of the KWDT precludes utilisation of surplus water by A.P., by means of projects of permanent nature? (KAR as modified by A.P.) 11. Whether the liberty to use surplus water under the decision of the KWDT precludes utilisation of surplus water by A.P., by means of projects of permanent nature? (KAR as modified by A.P.) 11. Whether the decision of the KWDT entitles the State of Andhra Pradesh to execute the following projects :- (KAR - as modified by A.P.) (a) Telugu Ganga Project (b) Srisailam Right Bank Canal (39) THESE three issues are taken up together as they are inter-linked and in fact the fate of the suit largely depends upon the answer to the aforesaid issues. Mr. Nariman, the learned senior counsel, appearing for the plaintiff- State of Karnataka contends that in the context of the water dispute which had been referred to by the Central Government to the Tribunal under Section 4 of the Act and the said Tribunal having investigated the matters referred to it and framed two schemes for distribution of water in river Krishna amongst the three riparian States, giving immediate effect to Scheme "A" and postponing the date of giving effect to, in respect of Scheme "B" as there was no agreement between the riparian States for the constitution of the Monitoring Authority, the said Scheme "B" cannot, but be held to be the decision of the Tribunal and as such was required to be notified by the Union Government under Section 6 of the Act, making the same binding on all the three States. According to Mr. Nariman, the Act conceives of a report to be given by the Tribunal setting out the facts as found by it and giving its decision on the matters referred to it and evolving Scheme "B" being an adjudication of the respective share of States in the waters of river Krishna, both in relation to the surplus water year and the deficit water year, the said adjudication must be held to be the decision of the Tribunal and the Final Order containing Scheme "A" alone cannot be held to be the decision of the Tribunal. The Central Government, therefore failed to perform its mandatory duties under Section 6 in publishing only the Final order which is merely a mass allocation in favour of three states at 75 dependability and not the adjudication of the entire dispute which had been referred to the Tribunal. Mr. The Central Government, therefore failed to perform its mandatory duties under Section 6 in publishing only the Final order which is merely a mass allocation in favour of three states at 75 dependability and not the adjudication of the entire dispute which had been referred to the Tribunal. Mr. Nariman further contended that the Tribunal in its report dated 24.12.73 having reached the conclusion- "After deeply pondering over the matter we have come to the conclusion that it would be better if we devise two schemes for the division of the waters of the river Krishna between the States OF MAHARASTRA, Mysore and Andhra Pradesh. These schemes will be called Scheme "A" and "B". Scheme "A" will come in operation on the date of the publication of the decision of this Tribunal in the Official Gazette under Section 6 of the Inter-State Water Disputes Act. Scheme "B'' may be brought into operation in case the States OF MAHARASTRA, Mysore and Andhra Pradesh constitute an inter-State administrative authority which may be called the Krishna Valley Authority by agreement between them or in case such an authority is constituted by legislation made by Parliament." It is difficult to conceive that Scheme "B" was not the decision of the Tribunal. In fact the Tribunal itself came to the conclusion that Scheme "B" is more comprehensive and provides for more equitable mode of utilisation of the waters of river Krishna and yet refrained from making it a part of the Final Order because a Monitoring Authority could not be constituted due to lack of agreement between the riparian States nor was it wise and practical to impose a Monitoring Authority without the consent of the parties and in this view of the matter Scheme "B" must be held to be a decision of the Tribunal adjudicating the shares of each of the States in the water of river Krishna, making the apportionment, both in relation to surplus as well as the deficit. Mr. Mr. Nariman, the learned senior counsel, also urged that the three States MAHARASTRA, the then Mysore (presently Karnataka) and Andhra Pradesh having themselves consented to, and having prayed for the method of allocation to be adopted by the Tribunal to the effect: (i) mass allocation of utilisable dependable flow at 75 , (ii) allocation on percentage basis of water in surplus as well as deficit years of flow, (iii) restrictions with regard to use and the nature of restrictions to be decided by the Tribunal and (iv) constitution of a Joint Control Body to give effect to the decision of the Tribunal, and Scheme "A" being an adjudication of item (i) above and Scheme "B" being adjudication of items (ii), (iii) and (iv) above, it is unthinkable that the Scheme "B" is not the decision of the Tribunal. Mr. Nariman also contended that under Section 5(3) of the Act after considering the decision of the Tribunal if Central Government or any State Government is of the opinion that any explanation or further consideration is needed, then a further reference could be made and such a reference/clarification, having been made by the State of Karnataka in relation to Scheme "B" and the Tribunal itself having entertained and answered the same, it is no longer open to hold that Scheme "B" is not a decision of the Tribunal. It is in this connection, Mr. Nariman also contended that though the State OF MAHARASTRA and State of Karnataka, also were heard by the Tribunal on the further clarifications sought for by the State of Karnataka, at no point of time they had taken the stand that Scheme "B" is not a decision and as such a clarification under Section 5(3) in respect of the same was not entertainable. In this view of the matter, there is no other option than to hold that Scheme "B" is also the decision of the Tribunal, providing for a better and fuller equitable distribution of the water in river Krishna and the issue in question must be answered in favour of the State of Karnataka. Mr. In this view of the matter, there is no other option than to hold that Scheme "B" is also the decision of the Tribunal, providing for a better and fuller equitable distribution of the water in river Krishna and the issue in question must be answered in favour of the State of Karnataka. Mr. Nariman also urged that the Constitution Bench of this COURt in Cauvery Water Disputes Tribunal, 1993 Supp (1) SCC 96 , has held that even the interim order passed by the Tribunal must be deemed to be a report and a decision within the meaning of Section 5(2) of the Act and in this view of the matter the final adjudication evolving Scheme "B" must be held to be a decision of the Tribunal and as such is required to be published by the Central Government under Section 6 of the Act. (40) MR. Parasaran, the learned senior counsel, appearing for Defendant No. 1, State of Andhra Pradesh on the other hand contends that the plaintiff in his plaint also has not averred that Scheme "B" is a decision of the Tribunal. According to the learned counsel the plaint read as a whole indicates that the plaintiff wanted enforcement of both Scheme "A" and Scheme "B" and thus the relief sought for is amalgam of both these Schemes favourable to the plaintiffState and not necessarily the implementation of Scheme "B" and this has purposely been done as the plaintiff was well aware of the fact that the said Scheme "B" does not form a part of the decision. In this connection, the learned counsel relied upon the assertions made in paragraph 2(b) of the plaint, which really deals with Scheme "A" and not Scheme "B". He also relied upon the assertions made in paragraph 6(1) wherein the plaintiff itself has averred that the Tribunal made Scheme "A" as part of its final decision and left the Scheme "B" to the good sense of the parties or to the wisdom of Parliament. Mr. Parasaran also with reference to assertion made in paragraph 21 of the plaint contends that according to the plaintiff the Tribunal merely expressed hope for getting the consent of all the States for adoption of Scheme "B" and, therefore it was not a decision of the Tribunal. Mr. Mr. Parasaran also with reference to assertion made in paragraph 21 of the plaint contends that according to the plaintiff the Tribunal merely expressed hope for getting the consent of all the States for adoption of Scheme "B" and, therefore it was not a decision of the Tribunal. Mr. Parasaran also strongly relied upon the assertions made in paragraph 23 to the effect "as submitted earlier, the Tribunal, while adjudicating the claims, has declared the rights of basin states in the surplus waters under Scheme "B" although such scheme was not made part of the decision" and contends that the aforesaid admission on the part of the plaintiff clinches the matter and Scheme "B" cannot be held to be a decision of the Tribunal. In fact Mr. Parasaran submitted that in view of the aforesaid averment in the plaint and in view of the provision contained in Order 12 Rule 6, the suit should be dismissed straightaway. Mr. Parasaran also urged that the plaint itself is merely for sharing excess water as indicated in Scheme "B" having derived the benefits of the mass allocation under Scheme "A" and is thus not a suit for implementation of Scheme "B" as contended by Mr. Nariman, the learned counsel appearing for the plaintiff-State. According to Mr. Parasaran, constitution of a Monitoring Authority like Krishna Valley Authority being the back-bone of Scheme "B" and the Tribunal having failed to get the consent of parties to constitute such authority and there being no law by the Parliament under Entry 56 of List I of the Seventh Schedule, at the most it can be said that the Tribunal had conceived of a more equitable scheme like Scheme "B" and had given its blue print, but the same cannot partake the charaCTEr of a decision of the Tribunal under Section 5(2) of the Act, so as to make it binding on all parties concerned. According to the learned counsel Mr. Parasaran, it is that adjudication or order made by the Tribunal which can be implemented independently of any agreement or law made by Parliament, as in this case the Final Order, containing Scheme "A" which can be held to be the decision of the Tribunal and not any observation or order made in the report in COURse of the proceedings. Mr. Mr. Parasaran urged that the Tribunal in its Further Report Exhibit PK2 having categorically stated "we do not think it proper that Scheme "B" should be implemented by our order". It is futile to contend that the said Scheme "B" is the decision of the Tribunal. Mr. Parasaran further contended that in the report itself, the Tribunal having considered the two schemes- Scheme "A" and Scheme "B" and under Scheme "B", the moment the scheme is given effect to, the Scheme "A" ceases to be operative and effective and the Tribunal having ultimately opted to make Scheme "A" as Final Order, which could be implemented, it is not possible to contend that Scheme "B" evolved by the Tribunal is also a decision of the Tribunal. (41) MR. Andhyarujina, the learned senior counsel, appearing for the State OF MAHARASTRA, Defendant No.2 supported the stand of the State of andhra Pradesh and contended that Scheme "B" cannot be held to be a decision of the Tribunal. According to the learned counsel, what can be held to be a decision of the Tribunal is what the Tribunal himself considered to have binding effect and in this view of the matter, the Tribunal having itself said that it is Scheme "A" which formed the part of the Final Order and which can be implemented, immediately on being notified, it is abundantly clear that the Tribunal did not think Scheme "B" to be its 'decision' though in COURse of proceedings, it might have discussed about the feasibility of such a scheme and its efficacy. Mr. Andhyarujina, the learned senior counsel, ultimately urged that it is only the Final Order of the Tribunal, containing Scheme "A", which can be held to be the decision of the Tribunal. (42) MR. Salve, the learned Solicitor General, appearing for the Union Government, reiterated the stand taken by the two other defendant States and submitted that the Tribunal itself has never thought Scheme "B" to be its decision and the expression "decision" has to be interpreted with reference to the water dispute defined in Section 2(c), the complaints and reference made under Section 3 and the adjudication provided for in Section 5. A combined reading of the aforesaid provisions of the Act, according to Mr. A combined reading of the aforesaid provisions of the Act, according to Mr. Salve, indicates that it is that adjudication of the Tribunal which is capable of being implemented on its own, which can be held to be the decision of the Tribunal, binding on the parties and not observations made or consideration of several proposed schemes by the Tribunal itself, in COURse of the proceedings. According to Mr. Salve, the Tribunal was quite conscious of the fact that it is not possible to implement Scheme "B" unless and until a Monitoring Authority could be provided for the same and such authority could be provided for either by the consent of the parties or by legislation made by the Parliament and since both were lacking, the Tribunal advisedly, did not make it a part of the Final Order to be its decision and in this view of the matter, Scheme "B" evolved by the Tribunal cannot be held to be a decision. (43) BEFORE examining the rival stand of the parties on this contentious issues in the light of the pleadings as well as the documents referred to, it may be necessary to indicate the scheme of the Act. The Inter-State Water Disputes Act, 1956, referred to as 'the Act' has been enaCTEd by the Parliament in the seventh year of the republic as the law providing for adjudication of any dispute or complaint with respect to the use, distribution or control of the water in any inter-State river, as envisaged under Article 262(1) of the Constitution. Section 2(c) defines water dispute and Section 3 of the Act provides under what conditions, a State can make a complaint and request to the Central Government for referring a dispute to a Tribunal for adjudication. Section 4 provides for constitution of the Tribunal by the Central Government and Section 5 provides for adjudication of the dispute by the Tribunal. Section 5(2) empowers the Tribunal to investigate the matters referred to it and then forward to the Central Government, a report, setting out the facts as found by it and giving its decision of the matters referred to it. Thus the report required to be given by the Tribunal after investigation under Section 5(2) of the Act must contain the facts as found by it as well as the decision of the matters referred to the Tribunal. Thus the report required to be given by the Tribunal after investigation under Section 5(2) of the Act must contain the facts as found by it as well as the decision of the matters referred to the Tribunal. A distinction, therefore, has been drawn by the legislature on the two expressions used in Section 5(2) of the Act, namely 'facts as found' and "decision of the matters referred to'. The crucial question which has to be answered in the aforesaid three issues, which have been taken together is whether Scheme "B" considered and evolved by the Tribunal would come within the expression 'facts as found' or the 'decision of Tribunal on the matter referred to'. It is in this context, what was the 'matter referred to the Tribunal' assumes great significance. The Government of India in its letter dated 10th of April, 1969 made a reference to the Tribunal for adjudication of the water dispute regarding the inter-State river Krishna and the river valley thereof emerging from the letters of the Mysore Government dated the 29th January, 1962 and the 8th July, 1968, the letters of the MAHARASTRA Government dated the 11th June, 1963 and the 26th August, 1968 and the letters of the Andhra Pradesh Government dated the 21st April, 1968 and the 21st January, 1969. The Tribunal in Chapter II of its report, summarised the complaints of each of the Governments and formulated the point of dispute for adjudication to the effect "that the parties want an equitable apportionment of the Krishna waters for their beneficial uses, so that they may know the limits within which each can operate and may plan their water resources development accordingly" and it further stated as to how and on what basis the equitable apportionment should be made. On the basis of the rival stand of the parties, the Tribunal framed issues and sub-issues on 14th of April, 1971 and for the present discussion, we are concerned with issue No. 11, as Issue No. 1 relates to the question whether there was any concluded agreement regarding allocation of the waters of river Krishna and whether such agreement was enforceable and was still subsisting and operative upon the States concerned. Issue no. Issue no. ii framed by the Tribunal is to the effect that what directions if any, should be given for the equitable apportionment of the beneficial use of the waters of Krishna river and the river valley. Under the said issue, there are as many as eight sub-issues and sub-issue 8 was to the effect "what machinery if any, should be set up to make available and regulate the allocation of water, if any, to the states concerned or otherwise to implement the decision of the Tribunal". This Issue No. II has been discussed in Chapter IX of the Report dated 24th of December, 1973, which has been marked as Exhibit PK1 and one of the sub-issue namely, on what basis should the available water be determined?, the Tribunal considered at length the several data and finally an agreement between the parties was arrived at that 75 dependable yield of the river Krishna upto Vijaywada is 2060 TMC, which has been indicated in Chapter IX itself. The Tribunal then proceeds with embarking upon the difficult and delicate task of division of waters of river Krishna and what directions ultimately could be given for equitable apportionment of the beneficial use of the waters of Krishna river and the river valley. In Chapter XIV of the report dated 24'h of December, 1973, Exh.PKI, the Tribunal ultimately summarised as to how each State claimed equitable share in the dependable flow and also in the water in excess over the dependable flow. It also considered the evidence of expert witnesses, adduced by the parties, indicating the advantage that will accrue by carry over storage, made in the Krishna basin. The Tribunal also thought over the matter as to whether the scheme for division of water should endure forever or there should be a room for review and ultimately was of the opinion that a review and modification of the allocation may become necessary to keep pace with the changing conditions. It also provided for a review of the order of the Tribunal at any time after 31st of May, 2000. It also provided for a review of the order of the Tribunal at any time after 31st of May, 2000. After making such general observations, it proceeded to consider the scheme of division of water and it did notice the agreed views of all the three States, submitted on 4th of May, 1973, indicating that there should be a mass allocation of utilisable dependable flow at 75 and there should be allocation on percentage basis of water in surplus as well as deficit years with certain restrictions with regard to the use to be decided by the Tribunal and, there should be a joint control Body to give effect to the decision of the Tribunal. The Tribunal indicated the merits and demerits of the schemes given by each of the States consisted of two parts and part II related to the constitution and powers of the Monitoring Authority, called the Krishna Valley Authority and though initially, the counsel for the parties had agreed upon the constitution of Krishna Valley Authority, but after the matter was heard again, the State of Andhra Pradesh categorically indicated that no consent can be given to set up Krishna Valley Authority. After noting the rival contentions of the parties on the question of constituting an authority and the best tradition as to how the Federal Structure functions and how the states are bound to obey the law made by the Parliament, it also came to the finding that the matter of setting up of an authority becomes the back-bone of the decision and an integral part of it and unless that can be given effect to, it will be of no use to have a decision as envisaged under Scheme "B" for equitable allocation of water amongst the three riparian States. The Tribunal in no uncertain terms, came to the conclusion that it will not be proper to set up any authority without the consent of the parties, and, therefore, the so-called document Exh.MRK-340 provided no assistance notwiTHStanding the fact that it was agreed to by the counsel of all the three States on 4th of May, 1973. Having failed in its attempt to reach a decision, containing the principle of allocation, envisaged under the agreed document Exh. Having failed in its attempt to reach a decision, containing the principle of allocation, envisaged under the agreed document Exh. MRK 340, the Tribunal thought it appropriate to evolve the two schemes called Scheme "A" and Scheme "B" and at Page 166ofExh.PK1, the Tribunal itself made it crystal clear that Scheme "A" will come in operation on the date of publication of the decision of the Tribunal in the Official Gazette under Section 6 of the Inter-State Water Disputes Act, 1956, and Scheme "B" may be brought into operation in case the States themselves constitute an Inter- state Administrative Authority, which may be called the Krishna Valley Authority by agreement between them or in case, such an authority is constituted by legislation made by Parliament. The aforesaid conclusion of the Tribunal, unequivocally indicates that it is Scheme "A" alone which has been made the decision of the Tribunal and the Tribunal nomenclatured the same to be the Final Order, which order in its turn has been notified in the Official Gazette by the Central Government under Section 6 of the Act. At Page 182 of the Report Exh. PK1, the Tribunal itself has given a complete picture to facilitate further discussion by setting out different clauses of the Final Order which according to the Tribunal embodies ail the provisions on the subject of apportionment of the water of river Krishna between the States OF MAHARASTRA, Mysore and Andhra Pradesh and then it is stated "these provisions of the Final Order cover all matters mentioned in Issue No. II and its sub-issues and issue no. II, is, therefore, decided as provided in these clauses of the Final Order." After deciding issue no. 11, as aforesaid, and thereafter deciding issue IV(B) in the next paragraph, the Tribunal then proceeds to examine the efficacy of Scheme "B". It is no doubt true that Scheme "B" is more beneficial and provides for more beneficial and fuller utilisation of waters of river Krishna but the Tribunal itself has not considered the same to be a part of its decision, which could be implemented by a notification under Section 6 of the Act. It is no doubt true that Scheme "B" is more beneficial and provides for more beneficial and fuller utilisation of waters of river Krishna but the Tribunal itself has not considered the same to be a part of its decision, which could be implemented by a notification under Section 6 of the Act. It may be noticed at this stage that in Cauvery Water Dispute Case [1993 (Suppl.) 1 SCC 96] while considering the question as to what formed the decision of the Tribunal under Section 5(2) of the Act this COURt examined the interim order which had been passed by the Tribunal and came to the conclusion that if the order is not meant to be merely declaratory in nature but is meant to be implemented and given effect to by the parties, then it would constitute a decision within a meaning of Section 5(2) and is required to be published by the Central government under Section 6 of the Act. Applying the aforesaid ratio to the case in hand and in view of the unequivocal statement made by the Tribunal while deciding Issue No.II to the effect that Issue No. II and its sub-issues are decided as per the clauses of the final order which contains Scheme 'A', it is difficult to sustain the argument of Mr. Nariman, appearing for the plaintiff-State that Scheme 'B' also is a decision of the Tribunal. As has been indicated earlier that in COURse of the proceedings before the Tribunal all the party States, no doubt, have consented to the points of dispute to be resolved by the Tribunal as per Exhibit MRK 340. But the Tribunal itself records the finding that on account of non-agreement between the parties it has not been possible to reach a decision on the principle of allocation agreed to under MRK 340 and, therefore, the Tribunal thought it fit to evolve Scheme 'A' which could be implemented on its own, the same being notified under Section 6 of the Act. In terms of the judgment of this COURt in Cauvery Water Disputes case, Scheme 'B' had not been meant to be implemented and given effect to by the parties to the dispute and as such cannot be a decision of the Tribunal under Section 5(2) of the Act. It can be held to be 'facts found' in the report submitted. In terms of the judgment of this COURt in Cauvery Water Disputes case, Scheme 'B' had not been meant to be implemented and given effect to by the parties to the dispute and as such cannot be a decision of the Tribunal under Section 5(2) of the Act. It can be held to be 'facts found' in the report submitted. The Tribunal in considering different proposals submitted by the States came to hold "unless a joint control body or inter State authority was established, it would be difficult to divide the waters of river Krishna between the parties in every water year on the lines suggested by the parties." (at page 161 Exh.PK-1). The Tribunal also recorded a finding: "It is not possible for us to take the view that we can infer the consent of the parties from Exh.MRK-340 filed on 4th May, 1973." (44) IN its further Report after answering the references made to it under Section 5(3) of the Act, in Exhibit PK-2 the Tribunal negatived the contentions of the State of Karnataka that allocation of water under Scheme "A" is not the Scheme for the division of water in accordance with the provisions of the Act. In said PK-2 at page 24 the Tribunal did observe; "The apportionment of water of the interstate river Krishna must be adapted to the peculiar charaCTEristics of the river system. We may also point out that until 1971-72 less than 1000 T.M.C. was utilised in the entire Krishna basin, and until the entire dependable supply of 2060 TMC is fully utilised, the complaint regarding the apportionment of the remaining water is unrealistic." (45) IN answering Clarification No.Ill filed by the State of Karnataka, requiring the Tribunal to give direction for implementation of Scheme "B" the Tribunal, no doubt, drew up a complete Scheme "B' and came to the conclusion that Scheme "B' provides for a fuller and better utilisation of the Waters of river Krishna, but hasten to add "We cannot make Scheme "B" part of our final order as requested by the learned counsel for the Government of India because the final order should contain only such provisions as may be implemented independently of any agreement or law made by Parliament." (see Exh.PK 2 at page 26) (46) IN its further report Exh. PK-2 after considering the question of abolition of Tungbhadra Board the Tribunal held : "In these circumstances we do not think it proper that Scheme 'B' should be implemented by our order." (47) THE aforesaid findings of the Tribunal both in the Original report as well as the further report unequivocally indicate that the Tribunal never considered Scheme 'B' to form a part of its decision for being implemented even though there cannot be any doubt about the efficacy of the Scheme in question. A water dispute having arisen between the three riparian States in relation to sharing of water of river Krishna and the said dispute having been referred to the Tribunal for its adjudication and the Tribunal having investigated the matters referred to it and having submitted its report containing the facts found as well as its decision, it is that decision which conclusively decides the dispute referred and is capable of being implemented on its own can be said to be the decision of the Tribunal under Section 5(2). In the case in hand the Tribunal itself being of the opinion that it is unable to implement Scheme 'B' by its own order and having apportioned the water of river Krishna as per Scheme 'A', the said Scheme 'B' cannot be held to be a decision of the Tribunal. (48) IT is also true , as contended by Mr. Nariman that the Tribunal did entertain clarification sought for by the State of Karnataka under Section 5(3) of the Act to some of the clauses in Scheme 'B' and a party is entitled to invoke the jurisdiction of the Tribunal under Section 5(3) only in respect of a decision but that by itself, in our opinion, will not clothe Scheme 'B' with the charaCTEr of a decision of the Tribunal. Mr. Mr. Nariman may be right in his submission that there has been an adjudication by the Tribunal in evolving Scheme 'B' indicating the manner in which the water of said river Krishna could be shared by three States in surplus and deficit water year, but every adjudication made by the Tribunal cannot be held to be a decision within the meaning of Section 5(2) unless such adjudication is capable of being implemented on its own and applying the aforesaid test Scheme 'B' not being capable of being implemented on its own so long as the back bone of the Scheme, namely, the constitution of Monitoring Authority is not agreed to, the said Scheme cannot be held to be a decision within the meaning of Section 5(2) of the Act. In the aforesaid premises, we answer aforesaid three issues by holding that the Scheme 'B' framed by the Tribunal is not the decision of the Tribunal and as such, was not required to be notified under Section 6 and, consequently cannot be enforced at the behest of the plaintiff. The issues are accordingly answered against the plaintiff. (49) THOUGH we have come to the aforesaid conclusion yet we think it appropriate to notice that the disputes for sharing waters of an inter-State river are not easy to be solved. A Tribunal presided over by a judge of this COURt took several years in formulating its conclusion. For arriving at its conclusion the Tribunal has attempted several negotiations between the rival States and also has taken into account the experts' evidence adduced by the parties. In evolving the two Schemes Scheme 'A' and Scheme 'B' it has also taken into account several schemes produced by each of the State. The Tribunal also thought while evolving Scheme 'B' that though it cannot be implemented as it was unable to constitute the Monitoring Authority on account of lack of consent between the parties yet it placed on record the said Scheme 'B' which according to the Tribunal is a better one for fuller utilisation of water resources of Krishna basin amongst the three States. While placing Scheme 'B' in its Report the idea was that the labour of the Tribunal in evolving the Scheme would not be totally lost and that is why it hoped that the parties may agree for constituting an authority or if they fail to agree the Parliament also could make a law but unfortunately, neither of the two contingencies has happened. Though Scheme 'B' has been held by us not to be a decision of the Tribunal and as such, is not capable of being implemented by a mandatory injunction from this COURt yet we have least hesitation to agree with the findings of the Tribunal itself that said Scheme 'B' provides for a fuller and better utilization of the water resources in river Krishna and in future if the question of allocation of river Krishna is gone into by any authority then the said authority will certainly look to the Scheme 'B' which had been evolved on the data available then and acceptability of the same will be duly considered. (50) WE may, however, hasten to add that it will be for the Appropriate Authority to be entrusted with the task of resolving the long simmering water dispute in Krishna basin between the three riparian States to come to its own decision on the basis of the data placed before it by the contesting States. Scheme-B formulated by the earlier Tribunal can only serve as a useful blueprint to this authority, though it may not strictly be binding on it. Our aforesaid observations on Scheme-B be understood in that light. Needless to mention that in COURse of proceedings before the Tribunal not only the three riparian States had requested the Tribunal by submitting a document Ex. MRK 340 on 4th May, 1973, indicating the principles of allocation signed by three counsel appearing for the three States which, however, was not agreed to later on, but also the learned counsel appearing for the Union of India had submitted before the Tribunal when the Tribunal was considering the clarificatory applications filed by different States on 8th May, 1975, to the effect :- "The Government of India have examined both Schemes 'B' and 'A'. They feel that Scheme 'B' is better and easier to implement than Scheme 'A'. They feel that Scheme 'B' is better and easier to implement than Scheme 'A'. If Scheme 'B' comes as part of the final order of this Hon'ble Tribunal, the Government of India will take necessary steps for putting it into operation. Scheme 'B' may be put as part of the final order in the manner as the Hon'ble Tribunal feels fit. We would like to have a complete scheme formulated by this Hon'ble Tribunal." This really indicates how the Union Government was anxious to have an order of the Tribunal to make Scheme 'B' , a part of its decision though ultimately for the reasons already indicated the Tribunal did not accede to the same. ISSUE No.1. (51) THE next important issue is Issue No. 1 which raises the question as to the maintainability of the suit in view of the bar provided under Article 262 (2) of the Constitution read with Section 11 of Inter-State Water Disputes Act. Learned Solicitor General Mr. Salve, appearing for the Union of India in fact piloted this issue which was, of COURse, supported by Mr. Parasaran appearing for the State of Andhra Pradesh. According to Mr. Salve the relief sought for by the plaintiff-State is itself a water dispute under the Act, and therefore, the suit is not maintainable in view of Section 11 of the Act. Referring to different averments made in the plaint learned Solicitor General contends that under the plaint the plaintiff really ask for implementation of the allocation already made under Scheme 'A' in respect of 2060 TMC at 75 dependability and the sharing of surplus as evolved under Scheme 'B' and as such the prayer tantamounts to have a new Scheme altogether not evolved by the Tribunal itself and, consequently, a fresh water dispute and therefore, such a dispute cannot be entertained by this COURt under Article 131 of the Constitution, the same being barred under Section 11 of the Act. Learned Solicitor General elaborated his argument with reference to the constitutional scheme and even went to the extent of contending that in a given case even the prayer for implementation of an Award of the Tribunal may become a water dispute under Section 2(c) of the Act and the moment it becomes a water dispute this COURt will have no jurisdiction to entertain a suit under Article 131 of the Constitution. Learned Solicitor General also referred to issues 4 and 5 formulated in this proceeding and contended that the very issues indicate a water dispute has arisen and consequently suit will not lie. According to Mr. Salve, even in a suit for implementation of the decision of a tribunal, if issues arise, which would be a water dispute under Section 2(c)(i) of the Act or fall under Section 3(b) or 3(c) of the Act, then the jurisdiction of the COURt under Article 131 must be held to be barred and in the case in hand, in fact, the relief sought for by the plaintiff-State tantamounts to a fresh water dispute. Learned Solicitor General contends that the language of Section 2(c) read with Section 3 is wide enough to enable any riparian State to raise a dispute in relation to the use, control or distribution of the waters of an Inter-State river and the machinery for resolution of such a dispute is referable to Article 262 of the Constitution, which provision manifests an intent to insulate the COURts from disputes which may assume political overtones and applying the test to the case in hand, the conclusion is irresistible that this COURt will not be entitled to entertain a suit under Article 131 of the Constitution. (52) MR. Parasaran appearing for the State of andhra Pradesh supported the argument advanced by Mr. Salve, the learned Solicitor General and contended, that the suit being one not merely for implementation of Scheme 'B', as contended by the plaintiff, but an amalgam of both the Schemes, sharing of 2060 TMC under Scheme 'A' and sharing of surplus above 2060 TMC as per Scheme 'B' it is obviously an innovation which the Tribunal has itself not thought of and more appropriately a fresh water dispute within the meaning of Section 2(c) of the Act and consequently a suit under Article 131 would not lie. Mr. Nariman appearing for the plaintiff-State on the other hand contended, that a suit filed under Article 131 is not exactly a suit filed in ordinary civil COURt. Mr. Nariman appearing for the plaintiff-State on the other hand contended, that a suit filed under Article 131 is not exactly a suit filed in ordinary civil COURt. The pleadings of the parties cannot be construed in a pedantic manner and reading the plaint as a whole the conclusion is irresistible that the plaintiff has made out a case to the effect that Scheme 'B' evolved by the Tribunal is also the decision of the Tribunal, though it could not be implemented in the absence of Constitution of Monitoring Authority and taking into account the time and energy spent by the Tribunal in evolving such a beneficial Scheme for better and fuller utilisation of the water resources of river Krishna, this COURt should issue appropriate direction for implementation of the said Scheme 'B'. According to the learned counsel the dispute relating to sharing of water of river Krishna having been adjudicated by the Tribunal and two Schemes having been evolved for that purpose and the relief being for implementation of Scheme 'B', it is essentially a suit for implementation of an adjudicated dispute and no longer forms a dispute under Section 2(c) of the Act, as contended by the learned-Solicitor General. In this view of the matter the bar under Section 11 of the Act cannot be attraCTEd. Before examining the rival stand of the parties it may be stated at the outset that the question of maintainability has to be decided upon the averments made by the plaintiffs and the relief sought for and taking the totality of the same and not by spinning up one paragraph of the plaint and then deciding the matter. In interpreting the scope of Article 131 of the Constitution, in the case of State of Rajasthan v. Union of India [ 1978 (1) SCR 1 ] Chandrachud, J., as he then was, held that the requirement is that the dispute must involve a question, whether of law or fact, on which the existence or extent of a legal right depends. It is this qualification which affords the true guide for determining whether a particular dispute is comprehended within Article 131. The purpose of Article 131 is to afford a forum for the resolution of disputes which depend for their decision on the existence or extent of a legal right. It is this qualification which affords the true guide for determining whether a particular dispute is comprehended within Article 131. The purpose of Article 131 is to afford a forum for the resolution of disputes which depend for their decision on the existence or extent of a legal right. In the very same decision Bhagwati, J., as he then was, analysing the provisions of Article 131 of the Constitution came to hold that there are two limitations in regard to the nature of the suit whether can be entertained by the Supreme COURt under the Article. One is in regard to parties and the other is in regard to the subject matter. In the present case, so far as parties are concerned, it is covered by clauses (a) and (c), inasmuch as the grievances of the plaintiff is that an adjudicated decision of the Tribunal in evolving Scheme 'B' was not notified by the Government of India under Section 6 of the Act and, as such, a dispute between the plaintiff and the defendant no. 3 the Union of India and further it is a dispute between the State of Karnataka and the State of andhra Pradesh under Clause (c) of Article 131 as the said State of andhra Pradesh did not agree to the constitution of a Monitoring Authority for implementation of an adjudicated decision of the Tribunal by evolving Scheme 'B'. In the very same decision Bhagwati, J., also further indicated that the Supreme COURt would have the power to give whatever reliefs are necessary for enforcement of legal right claimed in the suit if such legal right is established. In State of Karnataka v. Union of India & Anr. [1978 (2) SCR 1] this COURt again considered the scope of Article 131 of the Constitution. Chandhrachud, J., as he then was, held thus : "The jurisdiction conferred on the Supreme COURt by article 131 of the Constitution should not be tested on the anvil of banal rules which are applied under the Code of Civil Procedure for determining whether a suit is maintainable, Article 131 undoubtedly confers 'original jurisdiction' on the Supreme COURt and the commonest form of a legal proceeding which is tried by a COURt in the exercise of its original jurisdiction is a suit. But a constitutional provision, which confers exclusive jurisdiction on this COURt to entertain disputes of a certain nature in the' exercise of its original jurisdiction, cannot be equated with a provision conferring a right on a civil COURt to entertain a common suit so as to apply to an original proceeding under Article 131 the canons of a suit which is ordinarily triable under Section 15 of the Code of Civil Procedure by a COURt of the lowest grade competent to try it. Advisedly, the Constitution does not describe the proceeding which may be brought under Article 131 as a 'suit' and significantly, Article 131 uses words and phrases not commonly employed for determining the jurisdiction of a COURt of first instance to entertain and try a suit. It does not speak of a 'cause of action', an expression of known and definite legal import in the world of witness actions. Instead, itemploys the word 'dispute', which is no part of the elliptical jargon of law. But above all, Article 131 which in a manner of speaking is a selfcontained code on matters falling within its purview, provides expressly for the condition subject to which an action can lie under it. That condition is expressed by the clause : "if and in so far as the dispute involves any question (whether of law or fact) on which the existence or extent of a legal right depends". By the very terms of the Article, therefore, the sole condition which is required to be satisfied for invoking the original jurisdiction of this COURt is that the dispute between the parties referred to in clauses (a) to (c) must involve a question on which the existence or extent of a legal right depends. The quintessence of Article 131 is that there has to be a dispute between the parties regarding a question on which the existence or extent of a legal right depends. A challenge by the State Government to the authority of the central Government to appoint a Commission of Inquiry clearly involves a question on which the existence or extent of the legal right of the Central Government to appoint the Commission of Inquiry depends and that is enough to sustain the proceeding brought by the State under Article 131 of the Constitution. far from its being a case of the "omission of the obvious". far from its being a case of the "omission of the obvious". Justifying the reading of words into Article 131 which are not there, I consider that the Constitution has purposefully conferred on this COURt a jurisdiction which is untrammelled by considerations which fetter the jurisdiction of a COURt of first instance, which entertains and tries suits of a civil nature. The very nature of the disputes arising under Article 131 is different, both inform and substance, from the nature of claims which require adjudication in ordinary suits." The learned judge had also further observed : "A proceeding under Article 131 stands in sharp contrast with an ordinary civil suit. The competition in such a proceeding is between two or more Governments either the one or the other possesses the constitution power to act." Bhagwati, J. agreeing with Chandrachud, J. had also observed thus: "The only requirement necessary for attracting the applicability of Article 131 is that the dispute must be one involving any question "on which the existence or extent of a legal right" depends, irrespective whether the legal right is claimed by one party or the other and it is not necessary that some legal right of the plaintiff should be infringed before a suit can be brought under that Article." Kailasam.J. and Beg, J. agreed with the conclusions arrived at by Chandrachud, J. and Bhagwati, J. (53) THE eminent Jurist Shri H.M. Seervai, in his book on "Constitutional Law of India" , dealing with the scope of Article 131 of the Constitution states : "v/hen a COURt is given exclusive jurisdiction in respect of a dispute between parties, it is reasonable to hold that the COURt has power to resolve the whole dispute, including the enforcement of its decrees or orders, especially when provision has been made for such enforcement. The words 'if and in so far as the dispute involves any question (whether of law or fact) on which the existence of a legal right depends' are meant to emphasize the fact that the dispute must be one relating to legal rights, and not a dispute on the political plane not based on a legal right". The words 'if and in so far as the dispute involves any question (whether of law or fact) on which the existence of a legal right depends' are meant to emphasize the fact that the dispute must be one relating to legal rights, and not a dispute on the political plane not based on a legal right". (54) ARTICLE 131 of the Constitution subject to the other provisions of the Constitution confers Original Jurisdiction on the Supreme COURt over a dispute between the Central Government and one or more States or between two or more States subject to the condition that dispute involves any question whether of law or fact on which the existence or extent of a legal right depends. Article 262(1) of the Constitution authorises the Parliament to make law for adjudication of any dispute or complaint with respect to the use, distribution or control of the waters of, or in, any inter-State river or river valley. Sub-Article 2 of Article 262 also authorises the Parliament to provide by law excluding the jurisdiction of the Supreme COURt or any other COURt in respect of a dispute or complaint as is referred to in Clause (1). Thus Article 131 being subject to the other provisions of the Constitution including Article 262, if Parliament has made any law for adjudication of any water dispute or a dispute relating to distribution or control of water in any interstate river or river valley, then such a dispute cannot be raised before the Supreme COURt under Article 131, even if the dispute be one between the Centre or the State or between the two States. In exercise of Constitutional power under Article 262(1), the Parliament, in fact has enaCTEd the law called the Inter-State Water Disputes Act, 1956 and Section 11 of the said Act provides that neither the Supreme COURt nor any other COURt shall have jurisdiction in respect of any water dispute which could be referred to a Tribunal under the Act. This being the position, what is necessary to be found out is whether the assertions made in the plaint filed by the State of Karnataka and the relief sought for, by any stretch of imagination can be held to be a water dispute, which could be referred to the Tribunal, so as to oust the jurisdiction of the Supreme COURt under Article 131. On examining the averments made in the plaint and the relief sought for, by the plaintiff-State, we are of the considered opinion that what really the State of Karnataka wants is a direction from the Supreme COURt to the Union Government to notify the Scheme "B" evolved by the Tribunal and for a direction to the Union Government to constitute an authority under Section 6-A of the Act, which was inserted into the Act by amendment, though the said provision was not there on the date, the Tribunal submitted its report and the decision. The plaintiff asserts in the plaint, that the dispute between all the three riparian States in relation to sharing of the water of river Krishna was finally adjudicated upon by the Tribunal by evolving the two schemes and under Scheme "A", mass allocation in favour of three States being made in respect of the availability of water in the river basin at 75 dependability, under Scheme "B" allocation has been made both in respect of surplus as well as water in the deficit water year and according to the plaintiff, the entire water dispute which had been referred to the Tribunal can be said to have been resolved only when Scheme "B" comes into operation. The said Scheme "B" not having been treated as the decision of the Tribunal by the Union Government, and therefore, not being notified under Section 6 of the Act, the rights of the State of Karnataka flowing from implementation of said Scheme "B" is being infringed and the State is not in a position to have its future plan for utilisation of any surplus water in the river basin, and therefore, the appropriate authorities should be mandatorily called upon for notifying the said scheme and for constitution of the Monitoring Authority. This being the nature of the assertions made in the plaint and the relief sought for, it is difficult for us to hold that it constitutes a dispute within the meaning of Section 2(c) of the Act, and therefore, the jurisdiction of this COURt gets barred under Article 262 read with Section 11 of the Act. In fact, the assertions made in the plaint and the relief sought for can be held to be a claim on the basis of an adjudicated dispute, the enforcement whereof is sought for by filing a suit under Article 131 of the Constitution. In fact, the assertions made in the plaint and the relief sought for can be held to be a claim on the basis of an adjudicated dispute, the enforcement whereof is sought for by filing a suit under Article 131 of the Constitution. Such a suit cannot be held to be barred under Article 262 of the Constitution read with Section 11 of the Act. It is true, we have held while deciding issues 4, 5 and 7 that Scheme " B" evolved by the Tribunal is not the decision of the Tribunal under Section 5(2) of the Act but such conclusion of ours, would not necessarily lead to the conclusion that the suit itself gets barred under Section 11 of the Act, as contended by the learned Solicitor General. The question whether the jurisdiction of this COURt gets barred in view of Section 11 of the Act has to be answered by examining the assertions in the plaint and the relief sought for and by doing so, we are not in a position to hold that the assertions in the plaint together with the relief sought for, constitute a dispute under Section 2(c) of the Act, thereby ousting the jurisdiction of this COURt under Section 11. We, therefore, hold this issue of maintainability in favour of the plaintiff and against the defendants. ISSUE NO. 6 (55) THE aforesaid issue has been struck on the assertions made in the written statement of the State OF MAHARASTRA. It has been averred in the written statement of the State OF MAHARASTRA that Scheme "A" having been implemented from the date of its notification in the Official Gazette under Section 6 and being in operation for 21 years and parties having worked out their equities on the basis of said scheme on the mass allocation of water in river Krishna, the question of implementing Scheme "B" at this stage does not arise even assuming that Scheme "B" is held to be a decision of the Tribunal. According to the State OF MAHARASTRA to make Scheme "B" effective, it is necessary that all the States should have their reservoirs in the basin at the places to be indicated by the socalled Monitoring Authority, supposed to have control under the very scheme. According to the State OF MAHARASTRA to make Scheme "B" effective, it is necessary that all the States should have their reservoirs in the basin at the places to be indicated by the socalled Monitoring Authority, supposed to have control under the very scheme. The same not having been possible, any direction after a lapse of 21 years to implement Scheme "B" would be grossly prejudicial to the State OF MAHARASTRA. The further stand taken in the written statement is that Scheme "A" itself having been implemented all the years and having provided for a review after 31st of May, 2000, which is fast approaching and the State of Karnataka also at one point of time having taken the stand that the Scheme "B" should not be implemented, it would not be appropriate for this COURt to issue any direction for implementation of the said Scheme "B". In COURse of arguments, Mr. Andhyarujina, the learned senior counsel, appearing for the State OF MAHARASTRA, emphasised the fact that even as late as 30th of August, 1993, the Secretary to the Government, Irrigation Department, Karnataka, had intimated to the Secretary to the Government, Ministry of Water Resources, Government of India as per Exh. PK-94 that the Karnataka Government is of the firm opinion that establishment of Krishna Valley Authority is not called for, since even without reference to Scheme "B", the surplus water can be shared by the parties by mutual agreement. This indicates the stand of the Karnataka Government with regard to the implementation of the socalled Scheme "B" evolved by the Tribunal. (56) MR. Nariman, appearing for the plaintiff on the other hand contended that the State of Karnataka has all along been keen in requesting for implementation of Scheme "B", though in that letter PK 94, referred to by Mr. Andhyarujina, it has been merely stated that at that point of time it may not be necessary to have the Krishna Valley Authority. According to Mr. Nariman, rights in relation to sharing of water of river Krishna having been crystalised by formulation of both the schemes, that right cannot be negatived merely because it has not been operated for this length of time. According to Mr. Nariman, rights in relation to sharing of water of river Krishna having been crystalised by formulation of both the schemes, that right cannot be negatived merely because it has not been operated for this length of time. Having considered several correspondence between the parties, we find that though initially the State of Karnataka had requested the Union Government for implementation of Scheme "B", thinking the same to be the decision of the Tribunal and even though at one point of time the Union itself through its counsel Mr. Seyid Muhammad, had requested the Tribunal itself to make Scheme "B" operative but later on each of the States began their water management projects on the basis of the mass allocation made under Scheme "A". Mr. Nariman is right in his submission that the States had no other alternative inasmuch as it was only Scheme "A" which was notified and was made binding between the parties but the fact remains that having planned their respective projects on the basis of mass allocation made by the Tribunal, the State of Karnataka did think in the year 1993 in response to the letter from the Union Government for constitution of the Krishna Valley Authority that the State does not think it proper to have the Authority at that point of time. Thus all the three States have made their respective planning for utilisation of the allocated water in their respective share by the Tribunal under Scheme "A" which as until today continues to be effective but for the apprehension and dispute between the State of Andhra Pradesh and Karnataka, when Karnataka started construction of dam at Almatti and Andhra Pradesh went on with large projects like Telugu Ganga, Nagarjunasagar and others. In the matter of sharing of waters of inter-State river when the Tribunal constituted under the Inter-State Water Disputes Act, evolved a scheme of mass allocation as under Scheme "A" and that Scheme has remained operative for all these years and could be reviewed at any time after 31st of May, 2000 even as per the decision of the Tribunal itself, the contention of the State OF MAHARASTRA that direction to implement scheme "B" at this length of time should not be given effect to is of considerable substance. In a dispute of the present nature when the COURt is in cession of the matter before issuing any direction, the COURt is not examining merely the rights of the parties, if any, flowing from any earlier order of Tribunal but also the question of the equitability and the question of the efficaciousness of any such direction. It is in this context, the submission of Mr. Parasaran, the learned senior counsel, appearing for the State of Andhra Pradesh to the effect that a tested scheme like Scheme "A" which has remained operative for all these years should not be given a go-bye, abruptly by direct implementation of Scheme "B", particularly, when it is an admitted fact that not only the back-bone of said Scheme "B", the Krishna Valley Authority, has not been constituted but also the States themselves have not been able to build-up their reservoirs for storage of surplus water, which is also a part of Scheme "B" itself. We, however need not further delve into this matter in view of our conclusion earlier that Scheme "B" is not a decision of the Tribunal and as such the COURt will not be justified in issuing any direction in implementation of the said scheme. This issue is answered accordingly. ISSUENOS.10 & 11. (57) THESE two issues are inter-linked and, therefore are taken up together for consideration. The plaintiff's stand in this respect is that while making mass allocation in favour of three States in respect of 2060 TMC of Krishna river, which was found at 75 of dependability and while allocating specified quantity of water in a water year in respect of the three States, the Tribunal has also observed that And^ira Pradesh will be at liberty to use in any water year, the remaining water that may be flowing in river Krishna but such liberty will not confer any right what-soever nor can the State claim any right in respect of any water in excess of the quantity specified namely 800 TMC. The relevant Clause of the Final Order as notified in the Gazette by the Government of India is extraCTEd hereto: "(C) The State of Andhra Pradesh will be at liberty to use in any water year the remaining water that may be flowing in the river Krishna but thereby it shall not acquire any right whatsoever to use in any water year nor be deemed to have been allocated in any water year, water of the river Krishna in excess of the quantity specified hereunder- (i) as from the water year commencing on the 1 st June next after the date of the publication of the decision of the Tribunal in the Official Gazette up to the water year 1982-83. 800T.M.C. (ii) as from the water year 1983-84 up to the water year 1989-90. 800T.M.C. plus a quantity of water equivalent to 10 per cent of the excess of the average of the annual utilisations for irrigation in the Krishna river basin during the water years 1990-91, 1991-92 and 1992-93 from its own projects using 3 T.M.C. or more annually over the utilisations for such irrigation in the water year 1968-69 from such projects. (iii) as from the water year 1990-91 up to the water year 1997-98 800T.M.C. plus a quantity of water equivalent to 10 per cent of the excess of the average of the annual utilisations for irrigation in the Krishna river basin during the water years 1982-83, 1983-84 and 1984-85 from its own projects using 3 TMC or more annually over the utilisations for such irrigation in the water 1968-69 from such projects. (iv) as from the water year 1998-99 on wards 800 T.M.C. plus a quantity of water equivalent to 10 per cent of the excess of the average of the annual utilisations for irrigation in the Krishna river basin during the water years 1990-91, 1991-92 and 1992-93 from its own projects using 3 T.M.C. or more annually over the utilisation for such irrigation in the water year 1968-69 from such projects." (58) BUT notwiTHStanding the aforesaid observations made by the Tribunal, the State of Andhra Pradesh is going ahead with large-scale water projects for utilisation of all the surplus water, flowing in river basin to preempt the upper riparian States like MAHARASTRA and Karnataka from claiming their share in surplus water in excess of 2060 T.M.C., allocated under Scheme "A". The State OF MAHARASTRA as well as the Union Government also support the aforesaid stand of the State of Karnataka but the State of Andhra Pradesh on the other hand takes the stand that Andhra Pradesh being the lowest riparian State in the river basin and the Tribunal having granted the liberty to use the remaining water which may be flowing in river Krishna, there should not be any fetter in exercise of that liberty by the State and the apprehension of the State of Karnataka as well as the State OF MAHARASTRA is unfounded. In the context of the rival stand of the parties, the question that arises for consideration is whether the liberty granted by the Tribunal in favour of the lowest riparian State, namely the State of Andhra Pradesh to use the excess water is unfettered and the State can use the same in any manner it likes, or there should be some restrictions in such use. At the outset, it may be noticed that in the very clause, while giving liberty to State of Andhra Pradesh to use the remaining water, the Tribunal itself has hastened to hold "but thereby it shall not acquire any right whatsoever to use in any water year nor be deemed to have been allocated in any water year, water of the river Krishna in excess of the quantity specified." The aforesaid direction of the Tribunal itself curtails the socalled liberty granted to the State of Andhra Pradesh but since the Tribunal was giving a mass allocation in respect of the three States and unless such liberty is granted in favour of the lowest riparian State, the water would have otherwise entered into the Bay of Bengal and, therefore, it was thought fit that the lowest riparian State could utilise the same, but can never claim a right by using the excess water. In the context of the expenses involved for such major projects and the national loss, which the country cannot afford to sustain in a Federal Structure like our country, it is the duty of the Central Government to bear this in mind while sanctioning any such major project of the lowest riparian State like Andhra Pradesh. In the context of the expenses involved for such major projects and the national loss, which the country cannot afford to sustain in a Federal Structure like our country, it is the duty of the Central Government to bear this in mind while sanctioning any such major project of the lowest riparian State like Andhra Pradesh. A bare reading of the report of the Tribunal and its decision in the form of a Final Order, which has been notified by the Central Government, unequivocally indicates that the socalled liberty granted to the lowest riparian State does not confer any right beyond the allocable share, in other words, what the lowest riparian State has been granted under the decision of the Tribunal is a liberty to utilise the surplus water flowing without creating any right in favour of the State concerned. Such a liberty, therefore would mean that so long as the mass allocation is in force, the lowest riparian State can certainly utilise any excess water, flowing in the river basin, before it merges into the sea but such user should not be, by way of permanent construction of large-scale projects and water reservoirs, particularly, when the so-called mass allocation under Scheme "A" itself is liable to be reviewed after 31 st of May, 2000, which is fast approaching. The contention of Mr. Parasaran, appearing for the State of Andhra Pradesh, in this regard to the effect that there is no fetter on the manner of user of the surplus water, the liberty having been given, cannot be accepted in such broad basis though it cannot be denied that so long as Scheme "A" is under operation and so long as the two upper riparian States get their share of allocation of water, the lowest riparian State Andhra Pradesh can use the excess water flowing down in the river basin. It is true that while granting such liberty, the Tribunal has not indicated as to the manner of its user but the same must be read into the moment the other part of the Order is read namely such user will neither confer a right nor can be deemed to have been allocated in favour of the said lowest riparian State. This being the nature of direction of the Tribunal, it is appropriate for the Central Government to exercise the discretion while granting any scheme or project of the lowest riparian State and bearing in mind, what is really meant by the liberty granted, so that the lowest riparian State should not be allowed to proceed ahead with large-scale water projects for utilisation of the surplus water in excess of the allocated quantity over which, the State has no right. It is the Central Government which has to exercise this discretion while clearing projects of the lowest riparian State and it should be so exercised that there should not be any apprehension in the minds of the upper States that for all times to come, their right of sharing the surplus water would in any manner be endangered. These two issues are answered accordingly. ISSUE NO. 9 (59) IN view of what has been stated by us while answering Issues 10 and 11, this issue, no longer survives for any further consideration and this issue 's accordingly answered against the defendant State of Andhra Pradesh. ISSUE NO. 2 (60) THIS issue has to be answered on the basis of the assertions made in the plaint as well as the cause of action for filing of the suit. As has been stated earlier, the State of Karnataka being of the opinion that Scheme "B" evolved by the Tribunal is also a decision of the Tribunal, which unfortunately could not be given effect to, on account of lack of consent of all the States for constituting a Monitoring Authority and having failed in its attempt to get the said scheme implemented by getting a Monitoring Authority constituted, the said State filed the present suit. It is the refusal of the State of Andhra Pradesh to agree to the constitution of an authority, thereby making the scheme unimplementable, which gave the cause of action to file the present suit on the basis of which the suit has been filed and taking into account the fact that the State of Andhra Pradesh has never agreed to the constitution of the Krishna Valley Authority, which was thought to be the backbone of Scheme "B", it cannot be said that the plaintiff-State has no cause of action for filing the suit. This issue is answered in favour of the plaintiff and against the defendants. ISSUE NO. This issue is answered in favour of the plaintiff and against the defendants. ISSUE NO. 3 (61) THE aforesaid issue really does not arise for any further elucidation and discussion inasmuch as it has been held by us that Scheme "B" is not the decision of the Tribunal, though the same is mentioned in the report. The relief sought for, therefore, in the plaint cannot be held to be contrary to the report as the report submitted by the Tribunal did contain both the schemes- Scheme "A" and Scheme "B" but it is certainly contrary to the decision of the Tribunal inasmuch as Tribunal itself resolved the dispute referred to it by formulating Scheme "A" for distribution of the water on mass allocation basis and which according to the Tribunal itself is contained in the Final Order of the Tribunal. This issue is answered accordingly. ISSUE NO. 8 (62) THE aforesaid issue arises in view of Prayer (c) of the plaint, whereunder, the plaintiff has prayed that Defendant No. 3 be direCTEd by mandatory order to notify Scheme "B" and make provisions for establishment of Krishna Valley Authority, as contemplated under Section 6(A) of the Inter-State Water Disputes Act. It is the contention of the plaintiff that constitution of the Monitoring Authority under Scheme "B" being the back-bone of the Scheme and Section 6(A) having been brought on the Statute book by amendment, such authority could be constituted by the Central Government in exercise of powers under Section 6(A) and, therefore, though on the date, the further report of the Tribunal was submitted, it would not have been possible for the Union Government to constitute the Monitoring Authority but now after insertion of Section 6(A) of the Act, there is no impediment for exercise of that power and, therefore, this COURt should issue appropriate directions in that regard. According to Mr. According to Mr. Nariman, the very object of insertion of Section 6(A) of the Act, being the implementation of the decision of the Tribunal under the Act, which decision may involve of setting up of a machinery for the purpose, as is indicated in the Statement of Objects and Reasons and in the case in hand, setting up of such authority, not having been agreed to by the parties, nor the Parliament having come forward with any legislation under Entry 56 of List I of the Seventh Schedule and at the same time the said Scheme "B" having been evolved for better and fuller utilisation of the water of river Krishna by all the riparian States, this COURt should issue necessary mandatory orders, calling upon the Union Government to constitute the authority. According to Mr. Nariman, the learned senior counsel for the State of Karnataka, Section 6(A) confers power upon the Central Government and correspondingly, casts a duty on the said Government and if the Statute confers a power coupled with duty, the COURt can always compel the authority concerned to perform the said duty, if the same is not performed at all. Mr. Nariman contends that though the Tribunal devoted a good deal of its time in evolving Scheme "B" for better and fuller utilisation of the water of river Krishna amongst the three riparian States, but could not make it a part of the Final Order as one of the States did not give consent to the Tribunal for constituting the Monitoring Authority, which in fact is said to be the back-bone of the Scheme. But to obviate such difficulties when the Parliament itself has come forward, engrafting Section 6(A) on the Statute Book, which confers ample powers on the Central Government to form the authority for implementation of the decision of the Tribunal, the COURt, if it comes to the conclusion that Scheme "B" is the decision and should be implemented, can issue appropriate directions to the Central Government for constituting the Monitoring Authority. According to Mr. Nariman, Section 6(A)(1) is purely an executive function and does not contain an iota of flavour of subordinate legislation and, therefore, there should be no difficulty for the COURt in issuing mandatory injunction. Mr. According to Mr. Nariman, Section 6(A)(1) is purely an executive function and does not contain an iota of flavour of subordinate legislation and, therefore, there should be no difficulty for the COURt in issuing mandatory injunction. Mr. Parasaran, appearing for the State of Andhra Pradesh, on the other hand contended that the power under Section 6(A) is not executive, but legislative in nature and, therefore, COURt would not be justified in issuing a mandamus or mandatory injunction for performance of a legislative function in the same way as the COURt cannot call upon the legislature to frame a law. Mr. Parasaran also further argued that Sub- section (7) of Section 6(A) contemplates that the scheme framed under Section 6(A) has to be laid before each House of Parliament and it is only after the Parliament ratifies the scheme, will have effect and in the event, the Parliament does not agree for the framing of the Scheme, the same shall not have any effect. This being the position, the COURt will not pass a decree which ultimately is capable of being nullified by the Parliament. Mr. Parasaran further argues that Section 6(A) having come into existence in 1980, long after the decision of the Tribunal, even if it is held that Scheme "B" is a decision of the Tribunal and the performance of duty by the Central Government under Section 6(A) is executive in nature, yet the power cannot be exercised vis-a- vis the decision of the Tribunal except those subject matter which would fall within the power related to Entry 56 of List I. According to the learned counsel, the Central Government can establish an authority only if Parliament makes law under Entry 56 of List I and also makes a further declaration as required. Mr. Andhyarujina, the learned senior counsel for the State OF MAHARASTRA, also supported the contention of Mr. Parasaran and submitted that the power under Section 6(A) is essentially a delegated legislative power and, therefore, no COURt would be justified in issuing mandamus for exercise of such power. This issue really does not require to be answered since question of direction to constitute an authority like Krishna Valley Authority would crop up, only if it is held that Scheme "B" evolved by the Tribunal is the decision of the Tribunal and for its implementation an Authority is required to be constituted. This issue really does not require to be answered since question of direction to constitute an authority like Krishna Valley Authority would crop up, only if it is held that Scheme "B" evolved by the Tribunal is the decision of the Tribunal and for its implementation an Authority is required to be constituted. We have already held that Scheme "B" cannot be held to be the decision of the Tribunal, while deciding issue Nos. 4, 5 and 7 and in that view of the matter, we are not inclined to examine the contentious issues as to whether the exercise of power by the Central Government under Section 6 (A) is an executive one, as contended by Mr. Nariman or is legislative in nature, as contended by Mr. Parasaran. We, therefore, leave this issue open, not deciding the same. ISSUE NO. 12 (63) THIS issue has been framed at the instance of the State OF MAHARASTRA, in view of the stand taken by the said State that a review having been provided for, in 2000 A.D., the suit filed by the plaintiff is premature. While providing mass allocation in favour of three riparian States on the basis of 2060 T.M.C. of water at 75 dependable flow, the Tribunal itself has observed in its Original Report, which has been marked as Exhibit PK1 that the Order of the Tribunal could be reviewed at any time after 31st of May, 2000 and this period is considered reasonable in view of the fact that during the intervening period there will be increasing demands for water for irrigation and other purposes in the Krishna basin which may have to be examined in the light of the fresh data that may be available and further in view of the stupendous advance in the techNOLogy in the matter of conservation of water and its uses and also for other reasons. But the aforesaid review which has been indicated in the Order of the Tribunal is in relation to the allocation made under Scheme "A" and has nothing to do with Scheme "B". But the aforesaid review which has been indicated in the Order of the Tribunal is in relation to the allocation made under Scheme "A" and has nothing to do with Scheme "B". Since plaintiff-State has filed the suit on the assumption that Scheme "B" is the decision of the Tribunal and should be implemented by a mandatory order of the COURt, such a suit cannot be held to be premature on the ground that a review has been provided for after 2000A.D. This issue is, therefore, answered in favour of the plaintiff and against the defendants. ISSUE NO. 13 (64) IN the context of the prayer made in the plaint as well as the basis of the said prayer and in view of our findings on Issues 3, 4 and 7, question of granting relief sought for by the plaintiff State does not arise. But at the same time this being a suit under Article 131 of the Constitution, and in view of the nature of disputes raised by the parties and in view of our discussion in the judgment relating to Scheme 'B' evolved by the Tribunal, we think it appropriate to observe that in the event any of the riparian State approaches the Central Government, the Central Government would do well in constituting a Tribunal which Tribunal can go into the entire gamut of disputes and in the said proceedings the parties can certainly place the datas and materials on the basis of which Bacchawat Tribunal had evolved the two Schemes for efficacious allocation of water in river Krishna. It will also be open for the parties to place fresh datas on the basis of improved method of gauging even for finding out the availability of water in Krishna basin. In fact the learned Solicitor General, fairly stated that in the event any of the riparian States approaches the Central Government, it would not hesitate to discharge its statutory obligation for constitution of a Tribunal and that is the only solution at this juncture. (65) THE suit is accordingly dismissed with these observations. There would, however, be no order as to costs. BANERJEE, J. (66) I have had the privilege of going through the detailed judgments prepared by Brother Pattanaik concerning these two Suits (OS No.1 and OS No.2) and I record my concurrence therewith. (65) THE suit is accordingly dismissed with these observations. There would, however, be no order as to costs. BANERJEE, J. (66) I have had the privilege of going through the detailed judgments prepared by Brother Pattanaik concerning these two Suits (OS No.1 and OS No.2) and I record my concurrence therewith. I have also the privilege of going through the judgment prepared by Brother Majmudar, in OS No.2 concerning certain issues and I do also record my concurrence therewith but I wish to add a few pages as ;.any reasoning in the matters in issue by way of one concurring judgment for both the Suits as below;- (67) THE points of controversy in these two suits (OS No.1 and OS No.2/97) under Article 131 of the Constitution between the States of Karnataka, Andhra Pradesh and MAHARASTRA pertain to the use and sharing of Krishna river water. Whereas Karnataka has filed Original Suit No.1 of 1997 against the State of Andhra Pradesh as the first defendant and State OF MAHARASTRA as the second, the Original Suit No.2 of 1997 has been instituted by the State of Andhra Pradesh against the States of Karnataka and MAHARASTRA. Union of India, however has been impleaded as a party defendant in both the Suits. (68) BEFORE, however, proceeding with the controversies as raised, be it noted that peculiar is the distribution of water resources in the country which cannot but be ascribed to be highly uneven as regards time element. Over 80 to 90 per cent of the run off in Indian rivers occurs in four monTHS of the year and there are regions of harmful abundance and acute scarcity. The country has to deal with several critical issues for quite some time in the matter of water resources of the country. The total water requirement of the country by the year 2050 would be to the tune of 973 to 1180 Km3. Irrigation is the key area for highest water requirement followed by domestic use including drinking, power projects and other uses. The Report of the National Commission for Integrated Water Resources Development as prepared by the Ministry of Water Resources, Government of India: (September, 1999) records: "The country's total water requirement in the year 2050 barely matches the estimated utilisable water resources. It is of paramount importance that we should aim at reducing water requirement to the low demand scenario. The Report of the National Commission for Integrated Water Resources Development as prepared by the Ministry of Water Resources, Government of India: (September, 1999) records: "The country's total water requirement in the year 2050 barely matches the estimated utilisable water resources. It is of paramount importance that we should aim at reducing water requirement to the low demand scenario. While there appears to be no need to take an alarmist view, three major considerations have to be kept in the forefront while formulating an integrated water policy. First, that the balance between the requirement and availability can be struck only if utmost efficiency is introduced in water use. Second, average availability at the national level does not imply that all basins are capable of meeting their full requirement from internal resources. Third, the issue of equity in the access to water, between regions and between sections of population assumes greater importance in what is foreseen as a fragile balance between the aggregate availability and aggregate requirement of water." (69) THE Report further records that though the National Water Policy of 1987 was a good first step in the direction of evolving a national consensus but by reason of emergence of new issues, there is existing urgent necessity to revise the National Water Policy. Till such time that, however, this new revised policy can be given its true form and shape and thereupon implement the same in the actual physical ways and means, though unfortunate the Inter-State River Disputes continue and the same have turned out to be more common than uncommon: this is, however, not restrictive to this country only but it has crossed the transnational boundaries. The observations of the U.S. Supreme COURt in the case of Kansas v. Colorado [51 Law Ed.U.S. (203-206) 967] seem to be rather apposite in the present context. Brewer, J. speaking for the Bench observed as below: "This suit involves no question of boundary or of the limits of territorial jurisdiction. Other and incorporeal rights are claimed by the respective litigants. Controversies between the states are becoming frequent, and, in the rapidly changing conditions of life and business, are likely to become still more so. Brewer, J. speaking for the Bench observed as below: "This suit involves no question of boundary or of the limits of territorial jurisdiction. Other and incorporeal rights are claimed by the respective litigants. Controversies between the states are becoming frequent, and, in the rapidly changing conditions of life and business, are likely to become still more so. Involving, as they do, the rights of political communities which in many respects are sovereign and independent, they present not infrequently questions of farreaching import and of exceeding difficulty." (70) THE framers of the Constitution, however, being alive to the situation did incorporate Article 262 providing for adjudication of disputes relating to waters of inter-State Rivers or River Valleys. Significantly, Sub-article 2 of Article 262 by its unequivocal language expressly provides for a total ouster of jurisdiction of COURts including the Supreme COURt by Parliamentary legislation as regards resolution of such disputes. The subsequent legislation as introduced into the Statute Book, namely, the Inter-State Water Disputes Act 1956 is such a legislation under Article 262 of the Constitution and Section 11 thereof excludes the jurisdiction of the COURts including that of the Supreme COURt in respect of a water dispute. The true effect of Section 11, however, will be dealt with shortly hereinafter but before so doing, be it noted that whereas Article 262 pertains to ouster of jurisdiction of the Supreme COURt, Article 131 relates to conferment of jurisdiction on to the Supreme COURt and it is in this context, the effect of Article 262 will also has to be appreciated vis-a-vis Article 131 of the Constitution. (71) NEEDLESS to record here that Indian Constitution being federal in form and charaCTEr, there is existing division of powers between the Union and State Governments with clearly defined areas of authority between the States and the Union excepting, however, in certain exigencies as provided therein. The Three Lists under Seventh Schedule amply exhibit the wisdom of our Constitution framers in the matter of maintaining a dual polity. The Three Lists under Seventh Schedule amply exhibit the wisdom of our Constitution framers in the matter of maintaining a dual polity. The independence of the judiciary is maintained so as to determine the issues between the Union and the States or between one State and another and it is in this perspective, Article 131 of the Constitution provides for the original jurisdiction to the Supreme COURt of India to the exclusion of any other COURt in regard to disputes between the Union and one or more States or between the Union and any State or States on one side and one or more States on the other or between two or more States. (72) VERY learned and detailed submissions have been advanced vis-a-vis Article 262 and 131 of the Constitution, but before embarking on to a detailed discussion, it will be convenient to note the factual matrix of the matter in issue. The background facts: (73) ON 10th April, 1969, the Government of India constituted the Krishna Water Dispute Tribunal and referred thereto the water dispute regarding the utilisation of the water of river Krishna, the disputants being the States of Mysore, Madhya Pradesh, Orissa, Andhra Pradesh and MAHARASTRA. Subsequently, however, Orissa and Madhya Pradesh were discharged from the records of the case and I do not think it expedient to record the detailed reason therefor save and except as noted herein above. (74) IN their staterrnts of cases, MAHARASTRA, Mysore and Andhra Pradesh asserted their claims to the utilisation of water of Krishna river for existing and future projects: whereas MAHARASTRA claimed 820.70TMC for gross utilisation, Mysore claimed 1430.00 TMC and Andhra Pradesh claimed 1888.10 TMC as regards their gross utilisation. In addition to the above , MAHARASTRA claimed 32.5 TMC for regenerated flows and 70-80 TMC for industrial use and domestic water supply. Andhra Pradesh also like MAHARASTRA did claim further additional 120 TMC for domestic water supply and industrial use and Mysore State demanded 1430 TMC but did not include its needs for water for domestic and industrial use. There is no point of dispute that the total available water in the Krishna river system cannot match with the demands as raised or claims asserted. (75) INCIDENTALLY, Krishna is the second largest river in India. There is no point of dispute that the total available water in the Krishna river system cannot match with the demands as raised or claims asserted. (75) INCIDENTALLY, Krishna is the second largest river in India. It rises in the Mahadev range of Western ghats near Mahabaleshwar in MAHARASTRA and flows through Mysore and Andhra Pradesh obtaining further water accumulation support from various tributaries, rivulets and streams and finally joins the Bay of Bengal. In the run of 186 miles within MAHARASTRA, the bed fall is 14.06 ft. per mile, the fall up to mile 85 being steeper at the rate of 22.1 ft. per mile. In the run of 300 miles within Mysore, the bed fall is 2.12 ft. per miles and in a run of 358 miles within Andhra Pradesh, the bed fall is 3 ft. per mile. Be it noted that rivers Bhima and Tungabhadra are tributaries of Krishna but they themselves are major inter State rivers. (76) TRACING back the factual backdrop, it also appears that there was, in fact, an agreement between Madras and Mysore as regards sharing of Tungabhadra water above Mallapuram only. This agreement of July, 1944 fixed the snare of Madras and Mysore only in the Tungabhadra water and it did not bind the other riparian States. While it is true that the agreement of July, 1944 preserved Mysore's existing utilisation it has also established Mysore's right to use other quantities of water. After Independence and formalisation of Hyderabad State's accession to India, the Planning Commission on 31st July, 1951 wrote to the Governments of Bombay, Madras and Hyderabad enclosing copies of summary records of discussion and Memorandum of Agreement and asking them to ratify the agreement. Letters of ratification were sent by the Madras Government on 17th August, 1951, by the Hyderabad Government on 23rd August, 1951 and the Bombay Government on 30th August, 1951. Mysore, however, refused to ratify the agreement as required. As a matter of fact, on 24th September, 1951 as the records depict, the Mysore Government sent a note to the Planning Commission recording therein that the draft agreement should be modified so as to allow Mysore, the right to use 143.5T.M.C. of water and the question of ratification would be considered only after modification to the extent indicated above. As a matter of fact, on 24th September, 1951 as the records depict, the Mysore Government sent a note to the Planning Commission recording therein that the draft agreement should be modified so as to allow Mysore, the right to use 143.5T.M.C. of water and the question of ratification would be considered only after modification to the extent indicated above. It is this factual backdrop which has prompted the Tribunal to answer the first issue in regard to the conclusiveness of the Agreement of 1951 noted above in the negative. The Tribunal came to the specific conclusion that since Mysore did not ratify the agreement, there is no operative and concluded agreement between the parties and the ratification by other States were wholly ineffective. (77) THE next issue raised before the Tribunal was to the effect, viz. 'what directions, if any, should be given in the equitable apportionment of the beneficial use of water of Krishna river and the river valley'. On the main issue as above, however, following sub-issues were also raised: SUB-ISSUES (1) On what basis should the available waters be determined? (2) How and on what basis should the equitable apportionment be made? (3) What projects and works in operation or under construction, if any, should be proteCTEd and/or permitted? If so, to what extent? (4) Should diversion or further diversion of waters outside the Krishna drainage basin be proteCTEd and/or permitted? If so, to what extent and with what safeguards? How is the drainage basin to be defined? (5) Should any preference or priority be given to irrigation over production of power? (6) Has any State any alternative means of satisfying its needs? If so, with what effect? (7) Is the legitimate interest of any State affeCTEd or likely to be affeCTEd prejudicially by the aggregate utilisation and requirements of any other State? (8) What machinery, if any, should be set up to make available and regulate the allocations of waters, if any, to the States concerned or otherwise to implement the decision of the Tribunal? (78) INCIDENTALLY, the Krishna water disputes were investigated by the Tribunal in terms of an order of reference under Section 5( 1) of the Inter-State Water Disputes Acts and the Tribunal upon consideration of the matter forwarded its unanimous report and decision under Section 5(2) of the Act to the Government of India on 24th December, 1973. (78) INCIDENTALLY, the Krishna water disputes were investigated by the Tribunal in terms of an order of reference under Section 5( 1) of the Inter-State Water Disputes Acts and the Tribunal upon consideration of the matter forwarded its unanimous report and decision under Section 5(2) of the Act to the Government of India on 24th December, 1973. The parties before the Tribunal, however, taking reCOURse to the provisions of Section 5(3) of the Act of 1956 filed four separate references for clarification before the Tribunal, and the Tribunal subsequently upon hearing the respective submissions on 27th May, 1976 prepared its further report incorporating therein clarification sought for under Section 5(3) of the Act to the Central Government which was, however, subsequently published by the Central Government in terms of Section 6 of the Act of 1956 as the decision of the Tribunal. (79) IT ought also to be noticed that the Tribunal in its final order formulated Scheme A for distribution of water for each of these three States. Significantly, however, as regards Scheme A, the Tribunal in no uncertain terms observed that the same should be reviewed after a period of 25 years. The effect of such an inclusion is to be noticed with some care; but before doing so it would be convenient to note the basic features of the order as passed by the Tribunal firstly in the year 1973 and finally in the year 1976. It is significant to note that the Tribunal while directing Scheme 'A' for distribution of Krishna river water, has also formulated another Scheme (accepted to be as Scheme 'B'), the details of which would appear hereinafter in this Judgment. Suffice, however, it to note presently, that the Tribunal itself thought it fit not to treat it as an implementable decision (80) THE basic features of the order as passed in 1973 are as below: * (a) Mass allocation of utilisable dependable flow at 75 and having the detailed parameters of the past years pertaining to the flow of water, the total run of water would be 2060 TMC out of which 1693.36 TMC should be allocated to the three States for proteCTEd uses and the remaining 366.64 TMC (2060 TMC1693.36 TMC) in the manner as below: TMC 1. State of Maharashtra 125.35 2. State of Mysore 190.45 3. State of Maharashtra 125.35 2. State of Mysore 190.45 3. State of Andhra Pradesh 50.84 Total 366.64 Thus, out of the dependable flow 2060 TMC, the share of each State is as follows:- TMC 1. State of Maharashtra 565.00 2. State of Mysore 695.00 3. State of Andhra Pradesh 800.00 Total 2060.00 (b) The determination of the quantity of water which would be added to the 75 dependable flow of the river Krishna up to Vijaywada on account of return flows. (c) In order to give a complete picture, the Tribunal considered it fit and proper to incorporate certain provisions on the subject of apportionment of water of river Krishna between MAHARASTRA, Mysore and Andhra Pradesh inter alia as under. (a) Clause III of the order relates to the dependable flow and augmentation in the dependable flow due to return flows. (b) Clauses IV and V embody the scheme for apportionment of water of the river Krishna between the three States OF MAHARASTRA, Mysore and Andhra Pradesh. In Clause V it has been stated with regard to the State OF MAHARASTRA and Mysore that each of them shall not use in any water year more than a particular quantity of water specified therein. It is necessarily implied that both these States may use, in any water year, water of the river Krishna upto the quantities specified in that Clause subject to the conditions and restrictions imposed by the Tribunal and subject to the availability of water. It has been clarified that water has been allocated to each of the three States enbloc and that subject to the conditions and restrictions, each State shall have the right to make beneficial use of the water allocated to it in any manner it thinks proper. It was made clear that the water allocated to each State is for all beneficial purposes including domestic and industrial uses and PO separate allocation is made for such uses. (c) Clause IX places restrictions on the use of water in the Krishna basin by the three States. Restrictions on the State OF MAHARASTRA that it shall not use in any water year more than 7 TMC from the Ghataprabha sub-basin (K-3) as otherwise the requirements of the State of Mysore for the projects in that sub-basin may suffer. (c) Clause IX places restrictions on the use of water in the Krishna basin by the three States. Restrictions on the State OF MAHARASTRA that it shall not use in any water year more than 7 TMC from the Ghataprabha sub-basin (K-3) as otherwise the requirements of the State of Mysore for the projects in that sub-basin may suffer. Restriction on the State of Andhra Pradesh that it shall not use more than 6 TMC from the catchment of the river Kagna in the State of Andhra Pradesh so that waters of that river may reach the main stream of the river Bhima. While placing restrictions on the use of water beyond the stated quantity by State, the Tribunal laid down an upper limit which is slightly above the total requirement of that State as assessed from the demands which have been either proteCTEd or which have been held as worthy of consideration. (d) Clause X relates to the restrictions placed on the State OF MAHARASTRA on the westward diversion. (e) The provisions contained in Clauses XII and XIII are necessary as the^would furnish the machinery for determining how much water is used by each State in each water year. They will also furnish valuable data which may be of considerable importance in future. (f) Clause XIV deals with the review of the order of the Tribunal by a competent authority or Tribunal after the 31st May, 2000. (81) AS noticed above, the Tribunal itself has recorded that the Order ought to be reviewed after the lapse of a reasonable period of time. The reason for such a conclusion, however, is plain and unambiguous and in the words of the Tribunal, the reasons are as below:- "After a careful consideration we are of the opinion that the order of the Tribunal may be reviewed at any time after the 31st May, 2000. This period is considered reasonable by us in view of the fact that during the intervening period there will be increasing demands for water for irrigation and other purposes in the Krishna basin which may have to be examined in the light of the fresh data that may be available. It may be mentioned that the demands of the three States will by that time take much more realistic shape. It may be mentioned that the demands of the three States will by that time take much more realistic shape. Further, in view of the stupendous advance in the techNOLogy in the matter of conservation of water and its uses and also for other reasons it may become necessary to examine the subject of apportionment of water after the 31st May, 2000. We have, however, provided that the authority or the Tribunal which will be reviewing the order of this Tribunal shall not, as far as practicable, disturb any utilisation that may be undertaken by any State within the limits of the allocation made to it by the Tribunal. The Nile Commission of 1925 had recommended a similar provision to the effect that:- "The Commission foresees that it will be necessary from time to time to review the question discussed in this report. It regards it as essential that all established irrigation should be respeCTEd in any future review of the question." If during the intervening period there is an augmentation of the waters of the river Krishna by the diversion of the waters of any other river, no State shall be debarred from claiming before the aforesaid reviewing authority or Tribunal that it is entitled to a greater share in the waters of the Krishna on account of such augmentation nor shall any State be debarred from disputing such claim." (82) NEEDLESS to record that the water being a nature's bounty and social benefactor; ought to be allocated in such a way so as to have its beneficial use by all concerned. The word 'beneficial use' cannot but mean and imply use of water which is conducive to the well being of the society it may be for irrigation; for domestic use: for industrial purposes; for wild life protection; for pisciculture it is not possible to comprehend all the factors within the ambit of the expression 'beneficial' but in totality of the situation, one can, I suppose, attribute a meaning to the effect that beneficial use means 'beneficial use of the society, be it in any sphere'. Admittedly, water is scarce in this country; as such, the use must also be in accordance with strict requirement and not de hors the same. The Tribunal took into consideration various factors in the matter of allocation of water of the river Krishna to the three States. Admittedly, water is scarce in this country; as such, the use must also be in accordance with strict requirement and not de hors the same. The Tribunal took into consideration various factors in the matter of allocation of water of the river Krishna to the three States. It is significant to note that the river originates at Mahabaleshwar in MAHARASTRA and passes through Karnataka and Andhra Pradesh being the last riparian owner and then on to the sea. Any excess water, therefore, which is not utilised by either of these three States falls on to the sea. The Tribunal thus considered five factors in the matter of allocation. 1. Allocating the waters of certain tributaries of the river Krishna entirely to one State or another and dividing the remaining water on an equitable basis. 2. Allowing guaranteed supply of water to a lower State by an upper State and permitting the use of remaining water to the upper State with or without any restriction. 3. Restricting diversion by an upper State to its share determined on an equitable basis leaving remaining water for use to a lower State. 4. Allocating the water of the river Krishna to the three States by percentages to be fixed by the Tribunal. 5. Mass allocation of water of the river Krishna to the three States upto a certain limit providing further that the parties are to share the water in certain percentages to be fixed by the Tribunal in surplus as well as deficit years. (83) HAVING dealt with the issue and having provided Scheme "A" for allocation, the Tribunal itself, however, observed that "it would be better if we devise two schemes for the division of the waters of the river Krishna between the States OF MAHARASTRA, Mysore and Andhra Pradesh. These schemes will be called Schemes A and B. Scheme A will come in operation on the date of the publication of the decision of this Tribunal in the Official Gazette under Section 6 of the Inter-State Water Disputes Act, 1956. These schemes will be called Schemes A and B. Scheme A will come in operation on the date of the publication of the decision of this Tribunal in the Official Gazette under Section 6 of the Inter-State Water Disputes Act, 1956. Scheme B may be brought into operation in case the States OF MAHARASTRA, Mysore and Andhra Pradesh constitute an inter-State administrative authority which may be called the Krishna Valley Authority by agreement between them or in case such an authority is constituted by legislation made by Parliament." It is needless to record that Scheme 'A' does not at all depend upon the agreement of the parties and comes into operation by virtue of the order of the Tribunal. It is altogether independent of Scheme B. The Tribunal in its wisdom, however, though specific that Scheme B cannot come into operation without unanimous consent and approval of the parties or by enactment of legislation by the Parliament did, however, note in detail the modalities of Scheme B. It is on this score the Tribunal recorded as below:- "NOW we proceed to examine how the waters of the river Krishna should be divided between the parties under Scheme 'B'. The essential element in this scheme is that the States OF MAHARASTRA, Mysore and Andhra Pradesh share the utilisable waters of the river Krishna in each water year in stated proportions depending on the availability of water in that year, that is, if there is any deficiency in that year all the states suffer and if there is surplus all the States get the benefit, according to their shares fixed by the Tribunal. Another important feature is that it provides for fuller utilisation of the waters of the river Krishna by permitting the parties to construct additional storages in their territories to impound the water that my be flowing in excess of the dependable flow in any water year to be us?d in that very water year or in the succeeding water year". We have already bid stress on the point that for such a scheme to be workable, an inter-State administrative authority, which may be called the Krishna Valley Authority, should be established by agreement between the parties and failing such agreement between the parties by any law made by Parliament under Entry 56 List I of the Seventh Schedule of the Constitution. For the fuller utilisation of the waters of the river Krishna we are of the opinion that such an authority should be established to supervise and regulate, if necessary, that the water available for utilisation in the river Krishna in each year be shared by the three States. For reasons which we have already mentioned we are not setting up such an authority under our Order. But if such an authority is set up either by agreement between the parties or under the law made by Parliament we consider it proper to place on record our views as to how in that case the waters of the river Krishna should be divided between the States OF MAHARASTRA, Mysore and Andhra Pradesh. Ultimately it is for the parties or for the law made by Parliament to draw up a final scheme and our views are subject to modification in both the cases." (84) BE it noted that the States OF MAHARASTRA and Mysore, however, raised objections in the matter of conferment of powers in Krishna Valley Authority to transfer water from the reservoir of the lower State for various reasons. But the Tribunal had negatived the same with an observation that obviously the Krishna Valley Authority (KVA) will be composed of high ranking engineers who are expeCTEd to use their discretion in the matter of transfer of water from one State to another judiciously. In fine, however, the Tribunal concluded by recording that so far as the Scheme B is concerned the question of enforcement of such a Scheme is left with the "good sense of the parties or to the wisdom of the Parliament". (85) THE "good sense", however, has not dawned on to the parties as yet and neither has the wisdom of the Parliament prompted it to legislate on the score and as such, introduction of Scheme B in the matter of resolution of disputes between the lower riparian State and two upper riparian States vis-a-vis the water dispute pertaining to river Krishna according to the Tribunal's own view does not and cannot arise and it is because of this conclusion of the Tribunal, I refrain myself from detailing the modalities of Scheme 'B'. (86) IT would thus be convenient, therefore, at this stage to note the case with which the parties have come into this COURt upon invocation of Article 131 of the Constitution. (86) IT would thus be convenient, therefore, at this stage to note the case with which the parties have come into this COURt upon invocation of Article 131 of the Constitution. But before co doing, a shon but an interesting question has to be considered as regards interpretation of Article 262 of the Constitution and as raised by the learned Solicitor General of India while contending that both the suits ( OS No.1 and OS No.2) being barred under Article 262 having due regard to the language used therein. For convenience sake, Article 262 is set out herein below- "262. Adjudication of disputes relating to waters of inter-State rivers or river valleys.- (1) Parliament may by law provide for the adjudication of any dispute of complaint with respect to the use, distribution or control of the waters of, or in, any inter-state river or river valley. (2) NotwiTHStanding anything in this Constitution, Parliament may by law provide that neither the Supreme COURt nor any other COURt shall exercise jurisdiction in respect of any such dispute or complaint as is referred to in clause (1)." (87) INCIDENTALLY, whereas Article 262 pertains to legislative enactments containing an ouster of jurisdiction of the Supreme COURt: Article 131 relates to conferment of the jurisdiction of the Supreme COURt in the event of there being any dispute between two States or between one or more States on the one hand and another on the other ha: id or between Union of India and other States. Let us, however, analyse the issue of ouster of jurisdiction under Article 262 as contended by Mr. Salve, the learned Solicitor General of India. The heading of Article 262 is rather significant since it reads as "disputes relating to waters" and in the Body of the Article it is provided that in the event of there being any dispute, the Parliament may by law provide for adjudication of any dispute in regard to use, distribution or control of the waters of, or in, any inter-State river or river valley. Article 262 is specific as regards adjudication of disputes pertaining to water whereas Article 131 provides for a general power and conferment of jurisdiction of the Supreme COURt in the event of there being any dispute between two States etc. etc. Article 262 is specific as regards adjudication of disputes pertaining to water whereas Article 131 provides for a general power and conferment of jurisdiction of the Supreme COURt in the event of there being any dispute between two States etc. etc. There is neither any conflict between Article 262 and Article 131 nor, thus, the fields covered therein overlap each other, a specific exclusion has been thought of by our Constitution framers and being provided for in the Constitution. (88) THE issue, however, is slightly different presently, to wit, as to whether the present suit is barred under Article 262 read with Section 11 of the Act of 1956. It is now settled and I need not dilate on this score that the Inter-State Water Disputes Act, 1956 has been enaCTEd on the Statute Book by the Parliament in exercise of the powers conferred by Article 262. Section 11 of the Act of 1956 reads as below:- "11. The bar of jurisdiction of Supreme COURt and other COURts NotwiTHStanding anything contained in any other law neither the Supreme COURt nor any other COURt and shall have or exercise jurisdiction in respect of any water dispute which may be referred to a Tribunal under this Act." (89) THERE is, therefore, a total ouster of jurisdiction of all COURts. In this context reference may be made to an earlier decision of this COURt reported in AIR 1992 SC 522 (in the matter of Cauvery Water Disputes Tribunal) wherein this COURt while analysing Article 262 and the Water Disputes Act, 1956 stated:- "An analysis of the Article shows that an exclusive power is given to the Parliament to enact a law providing for the adjudication of such disputes. The disputes or complaints for which adjudication may be provided relate to the "use, distribution or control" of the waters of, or in any inter-State river or river valley. The words "use", "distribution" and "control" are of wide import and may include regulation and development of the said waters. The provisions clearly indicate the amplitude of the scope of adjudication inasmuch as it would take within its sweep the determination of the extent, and the manner, of the use of the said waters, and the power to give directions in respect of the same. The language of the Article has, further to be distinguished from that of Entry 56 and Entry 17. The language of the Article has, further to be distinguished from that of Entry 56 and Entry 17. Whereas Article 262(1) speaks of adjudication of any dispute or complaint and that too with respect to the use, distribution or control of the waters of or in any inter-State river or river valley, Entry 56 speaks of regulation and development of inter-State rivers and river valleys. Thus the distinction between Article 262 an^ Entry 56 is that whereas former speaks of adjudication of disputes with respect to use, distribution or control of the waters of any inter-State rivers or river valley, Entry 56 speaks of regulation and development of inter-State rivers and river valleys (emphasis supplied). Entry 17 likewise speaks of water, that is to say, water supplies, irrigation and canals, drainage and embankments, water storage and water power subject to the provisions of Entry 56. It does not speak either of adjudication of disputes or of an inter-State river as a whole as indeed it cannot, for a State can only deal with water within its territory. It is necessary to bear in mind these distinctions between Article 262, Entry 56 and Entry 17 as the arguments and counter-arguments on the validity of the Ordinance have a bearing on them. We have already pointed out another important aspect of Article 262, viz., Clause (2) of the Article provides that notwiTHStanding any other provision in the Constitution, Parliament may by law exclude the jurisdiction of any COURt including the Supreme COURt in respect of any dispute or complaint for the adjudication of which the provision is made in such law. We have also noted that Section 11 of the Inter-State Water Disputes Act makes such a provision. The said Act, as its preamble shows, is an Act to provide for the "adjudication of disputes relating to waters of inter-State rivers and river valleys". Clause (c) of Section 2 of the Act defines "disputes" as follows: "2. In this Act, unless the context otherwise requires, - (a) ......................................... The said Act, as its preamble shows, is an Act to provide for the "adjudication of disputes relating to waters of inter-State rivers and river valleys". Clause (c) of Section 2 of the Act defines "disputes" as follows: "2. In this Act, unless the context otherwise requires, - (a) ......................................... (b) (c) "water dispute" means any dispute or difference between two or more State Governments with respect to (i) the use, distribution or control of the waters of, or in, any inter-State river or river valley; (ii) the interpretation of the terms of any agreement relating to the use, distribution or control of such waters or the implementation of such agreement; or (iii)the levy of any water rate in contravention of the prohibition contained in Section 7". Section 3 of the Act states that if it appears to the government of any State that the water dispute with the Government of another State of the nature stated therein, has arisen or is likely to arise, the State Government may request the Central Government to refer the water dispute to a Tribunal for adjudication. Section 4 of the Act provides for the constitution of a Tribunal when a request is received for referring the dispute to a Tribunal and the Central Government is of the opinion that the water dispute cannot be settled by negotiations. Section 5 of the Act requires the Tribunal to investigate the matter referred to it and forward to the Central Government the report of its findings and its decision. The Central Government has then to publish the decision under Section 6 of the Act which decision is final and binding on the parties to the dispute and has to be given effect to by them. These dominant provisions, among others, of the Act clearly show that apart from its title, the Act is made by the Parliament pursuant to the provisions of Article 262 of the Constitution specifically for the adjudication of the disputes between the riparian States with regard to the use, distribution or control of the waters of the inter-State rivers or river valleys. The Act is not relatable to Entry 56 and, therefore, does not cover either the field occupied by Entry 56 or by Entry 17. The Act is not relatable to Entry 56 and, therefore, does not cover either the field occupied by Entry 56 or by Entry 17. Since the subject of adjudication of the said disputes is taken care of specifically and exclusively by Article 262, by necessary implication the subject stands excluded from the field covered by Entries 56 and 17. It is not, therefore, permissible either for the Parliament under entry 56 or for a State legislature under Entry 17 to enact a legislation providing for adjudication of the said disputes or in any manner affecting or interfering with the adjudication or adjudicatory process or the machinery for adjudication established by law under Article 262. This is apart from the fact that the State legislature would even otherwise be incompetent to provide for adjudication or to affect in any manner the adjudicatory process or the adjudication made in respect of the inter-State river waters beyond its territory or with regard to disputes between itself and another State relating to the use, distribution or control of such waters. Any such act on its part will be extraterritorial in nature and, therefore, beyond its competence." (90) LET us, therefore, analyse the prayers in the plaint of O.S. No.1 and 2 in order to deal with the question of bar of jurisdiction as raised by Mr. Salve. Prayers in OS No. 1 of 1997 (State of Karnataka v. State of andhra Pradesh & Ors.) are set out herein below and they read: operation and implemented. "(a) decree and declare that the surplus water in the river Krishna i.e., in excess of 2060 TMC at 75 dependability, must be shared in accordance with the determination and directions of the Tribunal, contained in its Report (1973) and further Report (1976). (b) decree and declare that the Defendant No.1 State of Andhra Pradesh is not entitled to insist on its right to use the surplus water i.e. in excess of 2060 TMC at 75 dependability, so long as Scheme B framed by the Tribunal is not duly and fully implemented by the State. (b) decree and declare that the Defendant No.1 State of Andhra Pradesh is not entitled to insist on its right to use the surplus water i.e. in excess of 2060 TMC at 75 dependability, so long as Scheme B framed by the Tribunal is not duly and fully implemented by the State. (c) Defendant No.3 be direCTEd by a permanent order and injunction including mandatory, decree, order and injunction, to notify Scheme B framed by the Tribunal and made provision for establishment of a Krishna Valley Authority and for implementation of the directions of the Tribunal in the Report (1973) and Further Report (1976), as contemplated under Sec.6A of the Inter-State Water Disputes Act, 1956. (d) Fora permanent order and injunction restraining the Defendant No.1 from continuing to execute the following projects vis., Telugu Ganga, Srisailam Right Bank Canal, Sirisailam Left Bank Canal, Bheema Lift Irrigation and Pulichintala Projects till the Scheme B framed by the Tribunal is duly and effectively put into (e) Pending the hearing and final disposal of the suit, the Defendant No.3 be restrained from clearing any new projects of the State of Andhra Pradesh not envisaged in Scheme A. (f) Pending the hearing and final disposal of the suit, the Defendant State of Andhra Pradesh be restrained by order and injunction of this Hon'ble COURt, from using any portion of surplus waters in excess of 2060 TMC for allowing any of the following projects viz., Telugu Ganga, Srisailam Right Bank Canal, Sirisailam Left Bank Canal, Bheema Lift Irrigation and Pulichintala Projects until implementation of Scheme B framed by the Tribunal. (g) For such other reliefs as the nature of case requires." (91) THE present suit (O.S. No.1 of 1997) is thus a suit for a declaration that the surplus water in the river in excess of 2060 T.M.C. at 75 dependability must be shared in accordance with the determination and declaration of the Tribunal. The second prayer is also pertaining to a declaration that the State of Andhra Pradesh is not entitled to insist on its right to use surplus water. The main prayer in suit no.1, however, is the prayer for a mandatory injunction to notify Scheme B framed by the Tribunal and to make provision for establishment of a Krishna Valley Authority as contemplated under Section 6A of the Water Dispute Act of 1956. The main prayer in suit no.1, however, is the prayer for a mandatory injunction to notify Scheme B framed by the Tribunal and to make provision for establishment of a Krishna Valley Authority as contemplated under Section 6A of the Water Dispute Act of 1956. The three prayers above, however, unmistakably depict that the plaintiff State of Karnataka has moved this COURt for vindication of a right in accordance with the direction of the Tribunal as contained in the reports of 1973 and 1976. It does not pertain to any water dispute as such, neither it can be claimed to be so having regard to the averments in the plaint. Mr. Salve, however, appearing for the Union of India and initiating the preliminary issue as regards the non-maintainability under Article 262 contended that Section 2 (c) of the Act of 1956 is of widest possible amplitude by reason of the definition of the words 'water dispute'. 'Water dispute' have been defined under Section 2(c) of the Act of 1956 as below:- "2.a & b.................................... (c) "water dispute" means any dispute or difference between two or more State Governments with respect to (i) the use, distribution or control of the waters of, or in any inter-State river or river valley; or (ii) the interpretation of the terms of any Agreement relating to the use, dis- tribution or control of such waters or the implementation of such Agreement; or (iii) the levy of any water-rate in contra- vention of the prohibition contained in Section 7." (92) THE dispute pertaining to water in or- der to be subject, however, to Section 11 must relate to use, distribution and control by reason of the definition Sec- tion itself, since the same has specifi- cally used the expression 'use, distribu- tion and control of waters in any river.' In the event, it does not come within the ambit of the expression 'use, distribution or control,' Section 11 which bars the ju- risdiction of all COURts in respect of any water dispute which is otherwise to be referred to the Tribunal would not have any manner of application. The test of maintainability of a legal action initiated by a State in a COURt would thus be whether the issues raised therein are capable of being referred to a Tribunal for adjudication. The test of maintainability of a legal action initiated by a State in a COURt would thus be whether the issues raised therein are capable of being referred to a Tribunal for adjudication. In the factual matrix of the matter under consideration, question of adjudication of any water dispute within the meaning of Section 2(c) would not arise. The suit pertains to implementa- tion, but does not require any further ad- judication of water rights between the States. Reference to two decisions of this COURt [N.P. Ponnuswami v. Return- ing Officer, Namakkal Constituency & Ors., 1952 SCR 218 and Mohinder Singh Gill & Anr. v. The Chief Elec- tion Commissioner, New Delhi & Ors., 1978 (2) SCR 272 ] in the contextual facts may not have much relevance; as such, we need not detain ourselves in dealing with the same. The plenary power of Ar- ticle 329 (b) which is a blanket ban on litigative challenge to electoral steps taken by the Election Commission for carrying forward the process of election to its culmination in the formal declara- tion of the results rests on to principles as more detailed in Mohinder Singh Gill's case. But, as noted above, the contextual facts do not warrant any de- tailed discussion and hence I refrain from doing so in regard thereto. Suffice it to note that whereas the adjudication of water dispute is wholly barred by reason of the power as contained in Section 11 of the 1956 Act read with Article 262 but by reason of the factual aspect of the matter and by reason of the prayer for implementation of the award rather than adjudication, the mischief of the bar of the Section 11 will not have any applica- tion whatsoever. In that view of the mat- ter the preliminary issue as raised by Mr. Salve that the provision for exclusion is operational in the facts of the circum- stances of the matter under considera- tion cannot be acceded to. The suit, therefore, is otherwise maintainable. (93) AS regards the second suit being O.S. No.2 of 1997 (State of Andhra Pradesh v. State of Karnataka and Others) and a perusal of the prayers therein indicate that suit is for a declaration in regard to utilisation of the quantity of the water as permitted by the decisions of Krishna Water Dispute Tribunal. (93) AS regards the second suit being O.S. No.2 of 1997 (State of Andhra Pradesh v. State of Karnataka and Others) and a perusal of the prayers therein indicate that suit is for a declaration in regard to utilisation of the quantity of the water as permitted by the decisions of Krishna Water Dispute Tribunal. And for the same reasons also the preliminary issue as raised by Mr. Salve vis-a-vis the second suit being O.S.No.2 of 1997 also fails. (94) TURNING attention on to the merits of the matter in the issue, be it noticed that at the instance of the parties, there are altogether 34 issues raised in the two suits apart from the preliminary issue of non-maintainability of suits under Article 262 read with Section 11. We appreci- ate the most learned instructive and lu- cid submissions that have been made for a number of days on behalf of the par- ties. But in my view the area of dispute is rather limited and scope restrictive and as such I need not set out all the issues raised in the suits above noted. Though, of COURse, if I may note that the submis- sions made on behalf of the parties ap- pearing before us have been most illumi- nating and instructive, to assess, how- ever, the crux of the matter being one of the basic elements of the judicial ap- proach and it is in this context, I do feel it expedient to record that in O.S. No.1 of 1997, the only question which needs an answer is as to whether Scheme 'B' as suggested by the Krishna Water Dis- putes Tribunal be termed to be a deci- sion within the meaning of Section 6 of the Act of 1956. (95) AS regards the second suit where the State of andhra Pradesh initiated the action in COURt being O.S. No.2 of 1997 the height of the dam at Almatti is the fo- cal point for consideration and it is on this score this COURt has been pleased to have Issue No. 9(a) and (b) for adjudi- cation which reads as below : "9.(a) Whether the construction of the Almatti Dam with a FRL of 524.256 me- ter together with all other projects ex- ecuted, in progress and contemplated by Karnataka would enable it to utilise more water then allocated by the Tribu- nal? (b) Whether Karnataka could be permit- ted to proceed with construction of such a dam without the consent of other riparian State, and without the approval of the Central Government? (96) NEEDLESS to record here that the learned submissions center around these two issues in whole of the two suits be- ing O.S. No.1 and O.S. No. 2 and which have in fact occupied more than 25 hear- ings before this Bench. (97) IT would, however, be convenient at this juncture to note that the issue per- taining to Scheme B - whether a decision or not, is the most relevant and the all important issue. But before dealing with the same on the factual aspects, a hur- ried reference to the exact meaning of the word 'decision' as used in the Act of 1956 ought to be made. In common Eng- lish acceptation the word "decision" means and implies settlement ; conclu- sion; formal judgment; resolved (the Con- cise Oxford Dictionary, New Seventh Edition). The situation we have, however, is slightly easier in the sense that the lan- guage of the Statute (Act of 1956) is rather simple and categorical. Section 5(2) of the Act specifically provides that when a Tribunal has been constituted in terms of Section 4, the Tribunal shall in- vestigate the matters referred to it and forward to the Central Government a re- port setting out the facts as found by it and giving the decision of the matters referred to it and Section 5(3) provides that if upon consideration of the decision of the Tribunal, the Central Government or any State Government is of opinion that anything therein contained requires explanation or the guidance is needed, the Central Government or the State Gov- ernment within three monTHS from the date of the decision, again refer the mat- ter to the Tribunal for consideration and the decision of the Tribunal shall stand modified accordingly. (98) INCIDENTALLY, in the contextual facts the decision of the Tribunal was pronounced in 1973 but by reason of applications in terms of Section 5(3) of the Act of 1956, the Tribunal published a further report in the year 1976. (98) INCIDENTALLY, in the contextual facts the decision of the Tribunal was pronounced in 1973 but by reason of applications in terms of Section 5(3) of the Act of 1956, the Tribunal published a further report in the year 1976. Be it noted that the deci- sion in terms of Section 5 is required to be published by the Central Government and on such publication in the Official Gazette in terms of Section 6 of the Act of 1956, the decision of the Tribunal shall stand as final and binding on the parties to the dispute and shall be given effect to by them. The decision of the Tribunal, thus assumes a very significant role in the matter of adjudication of water dis- pute by the Tribunal. Conceptually an ideal situation: Constitution Framers in their great thoughtfulness and by reason of divergence of language and custom provided that all Inter-State Water Dis- putes shall have to be resolved by a de- cision of the Tribunal set up therefor. In the instant case there was in fact such a Tribunal which did go into the issue of allocation of water of river Krishna be- tween the three States as noted above . The decision of the Tribunal has to be implemented and this is a Statutory re- quirement, therefore, and resultantly the decision will assume its conclusiveness and its binding nature immediately after publication of the same in the Official Gazette. (99) IT is rather significant to note that the Issue No.2 as raised before the Tribunal and noticed hereinbefore has been an- swered by the Tribunal in the final order itself by way of Scheme A, the detailed Scheme as suggested by the Tribunal. Scheme B however, does not find place in the final order. Admittedly, the Tribu- nal delved into the issue as an alterna- tive scheme for resolution of disputes by establishment of Krishna Valley Author- ity and it is this Scheme- it is this second Scheme which Mr. Nariman, Sr. Scheme B however, does not find place in the final order. Admittedly, the Tribu- nal delved into the issue as an alterna- tive scheme for resolution of disputes by establishment of Krishna Valley Author- ity and it is this Scheme- it is this second Scheme which Mr. Nariman, Sr. Advocate appearing for the Plaintiff State of Karnataka contended that the Scheme itself ought to be treated as a part of the final order and decision of the Tribunal and as such ought to be implemented (100) IT is to be noted, however, that the authority spoken of (Krishna Valley Au- thority) in terms of the order of the Tribu- nal itself has to be established either by agreement between the parties or by any law made by the Parliament under Entry 56 of List I of the Second Schedule to the Constitution. The Tribunal in no uncer- tain terms stated that propriety would not authorise the Constitution of such an au- thority. If I may state with all deference to the Tribunal that there is no question of any propriety involved in the matter in is- sue at all since the Tribunal being a crea- ture of the statute hadn't had any author- ity or jurisdiction to constitute any Board or Authority-it has to act within the pa- rameters as laid down under the Statute and not de hors the same and in the ab- sence of such an authority, question of any propriety does not and cannot arise. The decision of the Tribunal, the Statute provides, shall have a binding force on the parties to the water dispute, upon publication of such a decision. At best, observations pertaining to Scheme B and the proposal for establishment of Krishna Valley Authority can be only recommend- atory in nature since Scheme B does not admittedly form part of the decision of the Tribunal which has since been published by the Central Government in terms of the provisions of the Statute. (101) IT is by reason of the aforesaid I am, however, rather surprised that the Tribu- nal has taken upon itself to frame an al- ternative scheme when admittedly it had no power, authority or jurisdiction what- soever to constitute Krishna Valley Au- thority which is ascribed to be the "heart of Scheme B". (101) IT is by reason of the aforesaid I am, however, rather surprised that the Tribu- nal has taken upon itself to frame an al- ternative scheme when admittedly it had no power, authority or jurisdiction what- soever to constitute Krishna Valley Au- thority which is ascribed to be the "heart of Scheme B". The Tribunal has had to rely upon either the good conscience of the parties or the legislative will of the leg- islature to have a legislation in that re- gard . (102) WITH due deference to the Tribunal again I say that I have not been able to appreciate the need of propounding a 2nd Scheme as Scheme 'B' when the Tribu- nal itself stated: I. "When directing the transfer of wa- ter, the Krishna Valley Authority may give appropriate directions regard- ing the manner in which the water so transferred shall be used by the State, receiving the water." II. "If it is found on final accounting at the end of the water year that the water used in the water year by any State is in excess or less than its share under paragraph 2, the said Authority may, subject to the provi- sions of paragraph 3, take such steps as it deems necessary to ad- just the water accounts of the par- ties by regulating the extent of the use of water to be made by each State in succeeding years." III. "The Krishna Valley Authority shall tentatively determine the shares of all the States." IV. "The Krishna Valley Authority will be in a position to give directions to the parties to adjust their utilisations in such a way that the use made by each State at the end of a water year is as far as practicable.." V. "The Krishna Valley Authority is to ensure that the parties get waters in proportion to their share. For this purpose it can take any step which it deems proper at any time." VI. "The Krishna Valley Authority may even direct transfer of water from the project to upper State to the project of the lower State from time to time." VII. "We take it that the Krishna Valley Authority will be composed of high ranking engineers who are expeCTEd to use their discretion in the matter of transfer of water from one State to another judiciously." VIII. "We take it that the Krishna Valley Authority will be composed of high ranking engineers who are expeCTEd to use their discretion in the matter of transfer of water from one State to another judiciously." VIII. "A highly competent body such as the Krishna Valley Authority which will not only consist of the representa- tives of the States but also of the Government of India will take due care while directing the transfer of water from one State to another. As a further safeguard, it may be pro- vided that the direction of transfer of water from one State to another shall be by a resolution passed in a meet- ing in which all the available mem- bers nominated by the Government of India are present." (103) THE extract from the report of the Tribunal as above, would lead to an un- mistakable conclusion that the Tribunal wanted to provide certain guidelines to the Krishna Valley Authority as and when it is so constituted and significantly, the Tribunal itself has left it to the good sense and better appreciation of the parties or the legislative intent for the formation of such an authority this is where I respect- fully join issue: even conceptually till date the authority is not born and thus not even in embryonic stage. (104) IT is on this factual backdrop that both Mr. Parasaran, Sr. Advocate appearing for the State of Andhra Pradesh and Mr. Salve, Solicitor General appearing for the Union of India and Mr. Andhyarujina, Sr. Advocate appearing for the State OF MAHARASTRA contended in a similar tone that the prayers in the Suit (O.S.No.1 of 1997) being an amalgam of two schemes, question of grant of any relief would not arise. As a matter of fact, the learned Solicitor General for the Union of India, drew the attention of the Bench to the following statements of the Tribunal in its order: "After deeply pondering over the matter we have come to the conclusion that it would be better if we devise two schemes for the division of the waters of the river Krishna between the States OF MAHARASTRA, Mysore and Andhra Pradesh. These schemes will be called Scheme A and B. Scheme A will come in operation on the date of the publica- tion of the decision of this Tribunal in the Official Gazette under Section 6 of the Inter-State Water Disputes Act, 1956. Scheme B may be brought into opera- tion in case the States OF MAHARASTRA, Mysore and Andhra Pradesh constitute an inter-State administrative authority which may be called the Krishna Valley Authority by agreement between them or in case such an authority is consti- tuted by legislation made by Parliament. Scheme A does not at all depend upon the agreement of the parties and comes into operation by virtue of the order of the Tribunal. It is altogether independ- ent of Scheme B." "..In the end so far as the Scheme B is concerned, we leave the question of the enforcement of such a scheme to the good sense of the parties or to the wis- dom of Parliament." ligation for its publication so far as the Central Government is concerned. The Tribunal itself has treated it differently and in no uncertain terms recorded that whereas Scheme A should be enforced immediately, enforcement of Scheme B shall be effeCTEd on the happening of ei- ther of the two contingencies as noted hereinbefore. (105) ON the wake of the statements as recorded by the Tribunal as above, I do not see any reason to ascribe Scheme B as the decision of the Tribunal requir- ing publication or notification by the Cen- tral Government in terms of the provi- sions of the Act of 1956. (106) SECTION 6 of the Act of 1956 provides for publication of the decision of the Tri- bunal and is rather specific in its lan- guage and on an analysis of the same it appears that there is existing a statutory and mandatory requirement, to publish, in the event, a decision is communicated to the Central Government by the Tribu- nal pertaining to a water dispute within the meaning of the Act of 1956. As no- ticed above, the Tribunal itself recorded in no uncertain terms that in so far as Scheme B is concerned, question of en- forcement thereof would be dependant upon the good sense of the parties or to the wisdom of the Parliament. As no- ticed above, the Tribunal itself recorded in no uncertain terms that in so far as Scheme B is concerned, question of en- forcement thereof would be dependant upon the good sense of the parties or to the wisdom of the Parliament. This is thus not a decision in terms of Section 6 of the Act of 1956 so as to create an ob- (107) ONE redeeming feature I wish to em- phasise, well it is true, that in spite of Ar- ticle 262 and in spite of the factum of the present Suit (O.S. No.1 and 2 of 1997) not being hit by Article 262 but that does not, however, clothe the COURt to pro- nounce on an issue which the Tribunal itself thought it fit to leave open. The exercise of jurisdiction on the part of the Tribunal to deal with the issue of Scheme B in the order is totally outside the pur- view of the authorisation and as such the observations cannot but be ascribed to be wholly without jurisdiction. As noted above, the heart and soul of Scheme B admittedly has not come up as yet either at the instance of the parties or at the leg- islative intervention. As such, question of notifying Scheme B by the Central Gov- ernment and an order of this COURt on that count does not and cannot arise. The obligation to notify or publish arises only in the event of compliance of statutory requirement or there being a final decision of the Tribunal and in the con- textual facts as noted above, there is no implementable Scheme B by any stretch neither can the same be termed to be a decision of the Tribunal pertaining to Krishna Valley water dispute between the three States OF MAHARASTRA, Karnataka and Andhra Pradesh. In short, there must be an implementable decision and when the Tribunal itself recorded its non- implementability, issuance of an order of Mandamus on to the Central Government by this COURt in exercise of its power un- der Article 131 does not and cannot arise. (108) SIGNIFICANTLY, there has been a fur- ther criticism in regard to the prayer for notification of Scheme B by the learned Solicitor General. (108) SIGNIFICANTLY, there has been a fur- ther criticism in regard to the prayer for notification of Scheme B by the learned Solicitor General. According to him, the decision of the Tribunal was pronounced in the year 1973 and the further report after Section 5 (3) proceeding came in the year 1976 and the Scheme B at best being a recommendation cannot, how- ever, be ascribed to be a decision in the year 1997 and I do find myself in agree- ment with Mr. Solicitor that a Tribunal cannot exhypothesia pronounce a deci- sion which requires for its implementa- tion, a law to be enaCTEd by Parliament or by consent of the parties, more so by reason of the fact that the Union Govern- ment is not a party to the dispute and the Tribunal would not otherwise have the jurisdiction to issue any directive and conversely, the Union Government will not have any obligation either to agree to carry out any directive. (109) SCHEME B has been expressly rec- ommended subject to alternative contin-1 gencies (I) an agreement between the parties or, (II) a legislation by Parliament and it is by reason of the factum of non- fulfilment of either of the two happenings even during this interregnum, question of Scheme B as being capable of being no- tified as a decision does not arise. Scheme B in short, would not constitute a decision. The Krishna Valley Authority spoken of earlier and being the 'heart of the Scheme' shall have to be created by the Central Government and having due regard to the factum that Central Govern- ment has not created any such authority as yet, question of implementation of Scheme B, as a decision of the Tribunal does not and cannot arise. Needless to record, that there cannot possibly be any binding direction either and, in fact, there has been none in the matter of constitu- tion of an Authority such as Krishna Val- ley Authority-it has been left solely to the concurrence of the parties and the legis- lative intent of the legislature. (110) LET us, however, at this stage, shortly/ record as to how the parties have dealt with the report of the Tribunal vis-a-vis Scheme B and constitution of Krishna Valley Authority. (110) LET us, however, at this stage, shortly/ record as to how the parties have dealt with the report of the Tribunal vis-a-vis Scheme B and constitution of Krishna Valley Authority. The documentary evi- dence as placed before this COURt, how- ever, negates even the desire of the plain- tiff (State of Karnataka) to implement Scheme B or for formation of Krishna Valley Authority. (111) AS early as in 1989, Secretary to the Government of India, Ministry of Water Resources by a letter dated May 2,1989, addressed to the Chief Secretary, Government of Karnataka, informed the latter inter alia the following: It may be recalled that in respect of Krishna basin the concept of a Krishna River Authority has already been de- scribed by the Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal in the context of Scheme "B" providing for fuller utilisation of Krishna waters. It is, therefore, requested that the issue of establishment of Krishna Valley Au- thority may kindly be considered in the light of the developments quoted above and the views of the Government of Karnataka communicated early so that appropriate further steps can be taken." (112) BY reason of the factum of there be- ing no response from the Karnataka State, further letters were written and eventually on 17th August, 1992, the Secretary to the Government of Karnataka, Irrigation Department addressed a letter to the Secretary to Government of India. Ministry of Water Resources (Ex.P.K.93) with the following observations: "I write to invite reference to the letter cited above and to inform you as follows:- (a) the State of Karnataka is examining, in depth, the subject of establishment of an authority to be called as Krishna Val- ley Authority for implementing the Scheme "B" of allocation as formulated by the Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal. (b) The views of Karnataka on this sub- ject will be communicated as soon as a final decision is taken in the matter. (b) The views of Karnataka on this sub- ject will be communicated as soon as a final decision is taken in the matter. I am further direCTEd to request you not to take any decision in the matter, with- out hearing the views of Karnataka, as this issue will have far reaching implica- tions on the interests of the States in the Krishna Basin." (113) SUBSEQUENTLY, as regards the estab- lishment of Krishna Valley Authority, Un- der Secretary to the Government of Karnataka, Irrigation Department ad- dressed a letter dated 30.8.93 to the Sec- retary to the Government of India, Minis- try of Water Resources to the following effect: "I am direCTEd to refer to the Government letter dated 17.8.92 under reference and to communicate the following comments of Karnataka on the establishment of Krishna Valley- (a) The Krishna Water Dispute Tribunal has considered in its final order, only scheme "A" for implementation, i.e. allocation of 75 dependable flows only. The order of the Tribunal comes up for review in 2000 A.D. the time upto 2000 A.D. is required by the State for the implementation of projects as per Scheme "A" of allo- cations ordered by the Tribunal. The Tribunal, in its final order has not contemplated any machinery to be set up for the Scheme "A" of alloca- tion and hence there is no necessity for the setting up of the same. (Em- phasis supplied) (b) The constitution of machinery was only contemplated for scheme "B" where surplus flows also had to be allocated. But Scheme "B" did not form part of the final order of the Tribunal nor have the parties agreed so far for Scheme "B". The machinery can come only when parties opt for Scheme "B". (Emphasis supplied) (c) However, even without reference to Scheme "B", the surplus water can be shared by the parties by mutual agree- ment. The basin States are considering this at present. The machinery can come only when parties opt for Scheme "B". (Emphasis supplied) (c) However, even without reference to Scheme "B", the surplus water can be shared by the parties by mutual agree- ment. The basin States are considering this at present. (d) In view of the above, Karnataka Government is of the firm opinion that establishment of Krishna Valley Au- thority is not called for at present." (Emphasis supplied) (114) THE further documentary evidence as late as even 19th September, 1995 would be of some assistance in the mat- ter, the same being a letter from the Sec- retary to the Government of Karnataka, Irrigation Department to the Chief Engi- neer (PAO), Central Water Commission, the letter inter alia recorded the follow- ing: "Further at Page-3, Para-1 of the proceed- ings, it is mentioned that Government of Karnataka may be agreeable to the pro- posal of constitution of Inter-State Krishna-valley authority. In this connec- tion, I would like to point out that I had not stated about agreeing to the proposal of setting up of Krishna Valley Authority but the proposal made was that Central Water Commission or any such author- ity can monitor regulations from Almatti Dam under UKP with the proposal of keeping FFL of Almatti Dam at 521 m, and the utilisation under UKP being lim- ited to 177TMC as per the planning made by the Karnataka State based on the award of the Krishna Water Disputes Tri- bunal." (115) SHORTLY thereafter, by a letter dated 20th November, 1995, Shri P.V. Rangayya Naidu, Minister of State of Water Re- sources, Government of India addressed a letter to Shri H.D. Deve Gowda, Chief Minister of Karnataka recording inter alia the following: "The Tribunal had considered a Scheme 'B' which envisaged utilisation of aver- age flow in Krishna River. For implemen- tation of this Scheme it was envisaged to set up a Krishna Valley Authority. It would have ensured fuller utilisation of water of River Krishna. However, the Tri- bunal did not include Scheme 'B' in its final order. National Water Policy adopted by the National Water Resources Council in September, 1987 laid down that the river basin should be taken as a unit for plan- ning and development of water resources. With a view to operationalizing major components of the Policy, a sub-Com- mittee of the Consultative Committee of the Ministry of Water Resources was for- mulated. National Water Policy adopted by the National Water Resources Council in September, 1987 laid down that the river basin should be taken as a unit for plan- ning and development of water resources. With a view to operationalizing major components of the Policy, a sub-Com- mittee of the Consultative Committee of the Ministry of Water Resources was for- mulated. This Committee also recom- mended that for all the major inter-state rivers, river basin organisations should be established by enacting suitable leg- islation. If it is agreeable to you, I shall convene a meeting of the Irrigation Ministers of Krishna Basin States for working out the constitution and functions and the modalities for setting up of Krishna Val- ley Authority." (116) THE reply to the said letter, P.K.-97, by letter dated 3.2.96 (P.K.98) is also of some importance and the same is set out hereinbelow: "Please refer your DO letter cited above wherein a proposal has been made to convene a meeting of Irrigation Minis- ters of Krishna basin States for working out the constitution and functions and the modalities for setting up of Krishna Valley Authority. In this connection, I would like to draw your attention to the Scheme B as en- visaged by the Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal which provides for a fuller and better utilisation of the waters of the river Krishna. Only on the coming into op- eration of this scheme, Krishna Valley Authority has to be established. So far, three Inter-State meetings at the level of Chief Ministers have been held the first one on 21/4/1990 at Tirupathi, the second meeting on 22/8/1990 at Mysore and the third meeting on 22/5/1993 at Mahabaleswara, to resolve the issue of sharing the surplus waters of the Krishna basin. The fourth meet- ing is proposed to be held at Srisailam, after exchange of data as decided in the 3rd meeting which has not taken place so far. I feel that the Constitution of Krishna Val- ley Authority can follow, when once a consensus on Scheme B emerges." (117) THE documentary evidence there- fore, are galore to unmistakably depict the intention of the State of Karnataka up to the year 1996 as to the implementa- tion of Scheme B or the establishment of Krishna Valley Authority. As a matter of fact, there appears to be some justifica- tion in the contention of Mr. As a matter of fact, there appears to be some justifica- tion in the contention of Mr. Parasaran that upon acceptance of the report of the Tribunal in its entirety, question of imple- mentation of Scheme B would not arise. Scheme B would only come into effect as contended on the happening of two contingencies as noted above more fully and since none of the contingencies had taken place, question of implementation of Scheme B would not arise and it is on this score that Mr. Parasaran led very strong emphasis on the correspondence disclosed in the matter whereupon it is evident that Karnataka never wanted to implement Scheme B neither the estab- lishment of Krishna Valley Authority. Even the precautionary advise of the Central Water Commission to the riparian own- ers did not yield any result and the state of the facts were such that an omission even, in the minutes was seriously pointed out so that no contra expression of opinion would find place on record and the matter was proceeded with that tenor and vigour for all these years. In the year 1997, however, the State of Karnataka thought it prudent to institute the suit for implementation of Scheme B. I do not find it to be very wrong when both Mr. Parasaran and Mr. Andhyarujina appear- ing for the State of andhra Pradesh and MAHARASTRA respectively contended that the whole gamut of reasoning for this sudden change needs to be gone in de- tail and the matters undoubtedly needs a further look. Both the learned Senior Advocates have pressed into service the report of the Tribunal as regards the re- view of the whole situation in May, 2000 in so far as Scheme 'A' is concerned as otherwise there would be undue sufferance of the people of the riparian States. The documentary evidence noticed above lend credence to the submission of the State of Andhra Pradesh and MAHARASTRA. (118) THE review aspect of the matter, in this context, ought also to be noticed namely the review of the distribution of water after 25 years as contained in the report of the Tribunal and which has since been published by the Central Govern- ment in terms of its obligation under Sec- tion 6 of the Act of 1956. (118) THE review aspect of the matter, in this context, ought also to be noticed namely the review of the distribution of water after 25 years as contained in the report of the Tribunal and which has since been published by the Central Govern- ment in terms of its obligation under Sec- tion 6 of the Act of 1956. The Tribunal it- self felt that while Scheme B may be oth- erwise beneficial but Scheme B cannot be termed to be a part of the final order or the decision of the Tribunal warranting implementation by the Central Govern- ment. (119) THE third aspect of the matter is in regard to the concept of equities. Un- doubtedly, some projects have been con- struCTEd both by MAHARASTRA and by Andhra Pradesh and in the event of there being some change of situation, the na- tional exchequer would very severely hit since the project cost are otherwise phe- nomenal. Not only there would be a drain- age of national economy but correspond- ingly, the same will have its due effect on the entire superstructure of the country. In any event, the Scheme A itself is due for review in the month of May, 2000 and obviously the review shall have to be by a Tribunal and it would be open for the Tribunal to have a fresh look into the matter. Incidentally, the Government of India at one point of time thought of im- plementation of Scheme B and all its ef- forts on this score however have been rendered nugatory by the State of Karnataka as noticed hereinbefore by way of reproduction of documentary evi- dence. : (120) IN any event, the claim of Karnataka in a suit for implementation of Scheme 'B' should not be pressed to a logical extent without regard to the relative suf- fering and the time during which the State of Karnataka have let the State of Andhra Pradesh and State OF MAHARASTRA to go on with Scheme 'A' without any complaint whatsoever. Equity in any event would not permit enforcement of Scheme 'B' in the contextual facts. Observations of the US Supreme COURt in State of Wiscon- sin v. State of Illinois (74 L. ed.799) lend support to the above. Equity in any event would not permit enforcement of Scheme 'B' in the contextual facts. Observations of the US Supreme COURt in State of Wiscon- sin v. State of Illinois (74 L. ed.799) lend support to the above. (121) UNDOUBTEDLY, by reason of the long lapse of time the whole issue needs a relook and I am sure one of the riparian States would adopt the necessary steps in regard to constitution of such a Tribu- nal in due fulfillment of wishes and de- sires of the earlier Tribunal which itself has recorded a re-look of the whole Scheme in the month of May, 2000. (122) AS regards the issue pertaining to the grant of Mandamus against the Cen- tral Government to frame a Scheme un- der Section 6 A of the Act and as submit- ted by Mr. Nariman, be it noted that the Act of 1956 is a complete code in itself and does not create any agency for ex- ecuting the decision of the Tribunal. The Act is specific enough to provide that the decision of the Tribunal can be enforced by the State by reason of the same being of binding nature as far as the States are concerned and as dealt with more fully hereinbefore the Union Government is not bound in anyway. (123) APROPOS the issue, however, Mr. Salve's stress was on four counts: - on the first count Mr. Solicitor General con- tended that "the decision of the Tribu- nal, as already stated, does not bind the Central Government. If Section 6A is construed as a power coupled with a duty, it must necessarily follow that upon its pronouncement the decision of the Tribunal binds the Union (which is not even a party to such decision) to the extent that it compels the union to do all that is necessary to implement such decision. Conversely, the implementa- tion may itself involve obligations upon the union which cannot be imposed upon it by a Tribunal whose jurisdiction is con- fined to the parties to the water dispute: On the second count he contended that Section 6 and Section 6A operate in different fields Section 6A conditionally empowers the union to take steps which it may consider appropriate to imple- ment the decision of a Tribunal. This power of the union is not conditional upon any disobedience by the States, nor is it confined to situations where the Tri- bunal directs the constitution of an au- thority: On the third count he contended that the principle of "power coupled with a duty" is therefore inapplicable on ac- count of the fact that the decision of the Tribunal is not made binding upon the union under Section 6 of the Act. It also cannot be invoked since the nature of the power conferred under Section 6A is clearly legislative in charaCTEr, which is discernible inter alia from A the nature of the power conferred. B. The power to frame regulations, which would have overriding effect. C. The nature of Parliamentary control. D. The overiding power conferred in Section 6A (6). On the fourth count Mr. Solicitor General contended that the provision expressly provides that Parliament may decide that no scheme is necessary in the circum- stances. This clearly indicates that in the first instance, its delegate the central gov- ernment would have to decide whether a scheme is necessary. It would be ut- terly inconsistent with the scheme of the statute to suggest that the central gov- ernment is under a duty to frame a scheme, but in exercise of Parliamentary control, the necessity of the scheme is expressly referred to as one of the fac- tors which may be considered. (124) THE submissions have been made out on a total perspective of the situation and without dilating any further I record my concurrence therewith. The law as regards the issuance of a mandatory or- der or writ depends upon the authority ex- ercising the power as well as the nature of the function and obligations arising therefrom. It is settled law that such a direction cannot possibly be granted so as to compel an authority to exercise a power which has a substantial element of discretion. In any event the mandamus to exercise a power which is legislative in charaCTEr cannot be issued and I am in full agreement with the submission of Mr. Solicitor General on this score as well. At best it was only be an issue of good governance but that by itself would not mean and imply that the Union Govern- ment has executive power even to force a settlement upon the State. Solicitor General on this score as well. At best it was only be an issue of good governance but that by itself would not mean and imply that the Union Govern- ment has executive power even to force a settlement upon the State. (125) IN that view of the matter the Suit being O.S.No.1 of 1997 though otherwise maintainable but is devoid of any merit and the reliefs prayed for are wholly un- warranted in the contextual facts and as such dismissed without however any or- der as to costs. (126) AS noticed above the principal point of controversy in O.S.No.2 of 1997 per- tains to the height of Almatti Dam. My esteemed Brother Pattanaik, in the main judgment has dealt with the issue in great length and so has Brother Majmudar, in his concurrent judgment. While record- ing my concurrence with the conclusion reached, I would like to record my own reasonings therefor though, however, re- striCTEd to very specific issues as noted hereinbelow since I adopt the same rea- sonings as recorded in the above noted two judgments as regards the other ar- eas of controversies. (127) BEFORE, however, proceeding with the matter, a significant development during the COURse of trial of this suit ought to be noticed, since the parties herein have addressed this COURt at length on the same. The record of the proceedings dated 30th September, 1997 records a concession on the part of Shri F.S. Nariman, Senior Advocate appearing for the State of Karnataka being the Defend- ant No.1(0.S.No.2) and Shri T.R. Andhyarujina, former Solicitor General of India, appearing for the State OF MAHARASTRA being the Defendant No.3 (O.S.No.2) in the matter of acceptance of the prayer in the plaint in O.S.No.2 of 1997 filed by the State of andhra Pradesh wherein the Plaintiff State of Andhra Pradesh prayed for a declaration that the report/decision dated 24/12/1973 and further report/decision dated 27th May, 1976 of the Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal in their entirety are binding upon the three riparian States OF MAHARASTRA, Karnataka and Andhra Pradesh as also the Union of India. The order of this COURt of 30th September, 1997 as noted above recorded that by reason of such a concession , question of there being any controversy as regards the binding nature of the decision of the Tribunal dated 24th De- cember, 1973 and as modified by further report and decision dated 27th May, 1976 between the three riparian States would not arise. The order however, records that the learned Attorney General appearing for Union of India was otherwise unable to make any statement by reason of lack of instructions in the matter but this COURt was pleased to record that a par- tial decree to this extent on the basis of the concession or admission of the De- fendant Nos. 1 and 3 (Karnataka and MAHARASTRA respectively) can be passed and as such no further issue need be framed to cover this prayer in the plaint. (128) IT is this order which has been taken reCOURse to by Mr. Nariman in support of his contention that by reason of unequivo- cal acceptance of the prayer in the plaint, resistance on the part of andhra Pradesh for declaration for implementation of Scheme B is not only unwarranted but unjustified. Mr. Nariman contended that the concession of the two upper riparian States has made the task of this COURt easier by reason of the factum of accept- ance of the case of the Plaintiff (State of Andhra Pradesh) as regards the imple- mentation of the decision of the Tribunal in its entirety, more so by reason of the fact that the order of the Tribunal itself contain the second Scheme in the form of Scheme B. Quite sometime has been spent on this issue and at the first blush the same also seemed to be rather at- tractive, but on a closer scrutiny of the submissions of the parties and more so that of Mr. Ganguly apropos the written statement filed by the State of Karnataka recording its understanding of the case as made out by the Plaintiff the State of Andhra Pradesh, the point as raised can not be sustained at all. For convenience sake, the relevant extracts of the under- standing of the State of Karnataka as re- gards the averments in the Plaint filed by the State of Andhra Pradesh, are set out hereinbelow: "3. For convenience sake, the relevant extracts of the under- standing of the State of Karnataka as re- gards the averments in the Plaint filed by the State of Andhra Pradesh, are set out hereinbelow: "3. MAIN CONTENTIONS OF THE STATE of andhra pradesh 3.1 State of andhra Pradesh contends that the entire report and Further Report of the Tribunal should and ought to have been gazetted and if gazetted, it would disclose that Karnataka was restriCTEd to utilise for irrigation 155 TMC. in Up- per Krishna Project and for that purpose the height of the Dam could not be more than 519.6 m. (Note: It is not disputed by Andhra Pradesh that the present stage of construction of the Almatti Dam is upto only 509.0 m.). 3.2 that if the Report and Further Report are taken into account, it will be clear that the area to be irrigated under the Upper Krishna Project would be of the order of 14.2 Lakh Acres-and Karnataka has uni- laterally planned to increase, the area to be irrigated to 23.77 lakh acres which is contrary to the Decision of the Tribu- nal. 3.3 that if Karnataka is permitted to go ahead with raising of Almatti dam beyond RL 519.60 m, it enables storage of more than 200.00 TMC. and utilisation of about 400 TMC, Therefore, according to andhra Pradesh the downstream flow would be gravely affeCTEd and consequently the power and irrigation needs would suffer. (129) ON the wake of the aforesaid under- standing as recorded in the written state- ment, Mr. Ganguly the learned Senior Counsel for the State of andhra Pradesh being the Plaintiff in O.S.No.2 of 1997 contended that the prayer made in the Plaint ought to be appreciated in the con- text of the averments made in the Plaint itself and the appreciation thereof by the Defendant and not de hors the same. Perusal of the statement as above would unmistakably depict the specific under- standing of the State of Karnataka as re- gards the averments in the Plaint and that by itself negates the submission of Mr.Nariman. Having come to the conclusion as above, I need not dilate much on the other part of the submissions of Mr. Ganguly more so by reason of the fact that the same has been dealt with by Brother Pattanaik, with very great lucidity. (130) ONE of the principal contentions of Mr. Having come to the conclusion as above, I need not dilate much on the other part of the submissions of Mr. Ganguly more so by reason of the fact that the same has been dealt with by Brother Pattanaik, with very great lucidity. (130) ONE of the principal contentions of Mr. Ganguly as regards the issue of height of Almatti Dam is the factum of ac- ceptance of Scheme A, as the decision of the Krishna Water Dispute Tribunal. Mr. Ganguly contended that the decision hav- ing been published in terms of statutory requirement has a binding effect. Mr. Ganguly contended that out of total avail- able water of 2060 TMC for distribution between the party States on agreed 75 dependability, the Tribunal allocated 1693.36 TMC to the three riparian States as proteCTEd utilisation and the balance quantity of 366.64 TMC be divided between three States as below: I State of Maharashtra 125.35 TMC II State of Mysore 190.45 TMC III State of Andhra Pradesh 50.84 TMC The Tribunal in Clarification No.XXI as appears from Exhibit P.K.II recorded the following: "In MR Note No.30, MY Note No.17 and AP Note No.14, the States OF MAHARASTRA, Karnataka and Andhra Pradesh set forth their revised claims-for allocation of water out of the water left after providing for all the proteCTEd utilisations. We assessed the needs of the three States after considering their revised demands. We have allowed the demands for Gudavale Lift Scheme and Koyna-Krishna Lift Irrigation Scheme OF MAHARASTRA and also for lift irrigation under Malaprabha Project for the reasons given at pages 638-643,674-675 and 731 - 733 of Volume II of the Report. The rea- sons for not allowing the demand for Bhima Lift Irrigation Project are given at pages 737-738 of Vol.II of the Report. We have considered the Upper Krishna Project at pages 714-719 of Vol.II of the Report. The parties agreed to protect the utilisation of 103 T.M.C. for the Project. We allowed the additional de- mand for this Project to the extent men- tioned in the Report after taking into ac- count the available water supply and the needs of the other States. Subject to our observations made elsewhere in this Report, regarding the Upper Krishna Project, we see no ground for any fur- ther clarification. We allowed the additional de- mand for this Project to the extent men- tioned in the Report after taking into ac- count the available water supply and the needs of the other States. Subject to our observations made elsewhere in this Report, regarding the Upper Krishna Project, we see no ground for any fur- ther clarification. However, we may add that this Project is to be executed by stages and if it is found in future that more water is available for distribution between the three States, the claim of Karnataka for allocating more water for this Project may receive favourable con- sideration at the hands of the Tribu- nal or authority reviewing the mat- ter. Almatti Dam is under construc- tion and may serve as carry-over res- ervoir (Emphasis supplied). (131) IT thus appears that the claim of Karnataka for allocating more water for Upper Krishna Project has been ex- pressly negated and Almatti Dam has been taken to serve only as a carry-over reservoir obviously for irrigation purposes and it is on this score that Mr. Ganguly contended that the three riparian States being bound by the mandate of the Tribu- nal as contained in its decision, as noti- fied in terms of Section 6 of the Act of 1956 cannot possibly act contra the de- cision of the Tribunal. Admittedly, the height of Almatti was at FRL 509. Under the final award or the decision of the Tri- bunal, the total utilisation permitted un- der all the three components of Upper Krishna Project i.e.Hippargi, Almatti and Narayanpurwas 155 + 5 = 160 TMC and no irrigation was permitted under Almatti Canal since the Tribunal expressly ob- served in Exhibit P.K.II in answer to a clarification from the State OF MAHARASTRA: "We may also point out that we did not allow any demand for water in respect of Almatti Canal." The further demand of the State of Karnataka for the Upper Krishna Project has also been negated by the Tribunal upon recording that in the event of future availability of water for distribution between the three States, the claim of the Karnataka ought to be considered while reviewing the mat- ter as noticed hereinbefore in this judg- ment. Mr. Mr. Ganguly's stress has been that the factum of Almatti Dam being a carry- over reservoir does not thus require any further increase in height and thus seems to have some substance having regard to available water. Incidentally, be it noted here that this COURt at an early stage of proceeding did direct maintenance of sta- tus quo as regards the height of Almatti Barn though, however, permitted con- struction of the side poles but without placement of any gate so as not to ob- struct the flow of water. Facts disclose that the side poles have already been ereCTEd and what is required is to place the gate which can be effeCTEd admittedly without much loss of time. (132) IT is on this perspective that Mr. Ganguly contended that the rights of the parties being adjudicated by the Tribunal having due authorisation of law cannot be interfered with, against the interests of another riparian State and in the event of there being an attempt to do so, this COURt in exercise of its jurisdiction under Article 131 of the Constitution ought to grant a mandatory injunction restraining the State of Karnataka from raising the height of Almatti Dam to FRL 524 mt. as against the existing FRL 509 mt. While it is true that the rights of the parties have been adjudicated by the properly consti- tuted statutory Tribunal and the decision of the Tribunal has a binding effect in terms of Section 6 of the Act of 1956 but the issue arises as to whether there ex- ist any right as such, so far as the Plain- tiff is concerned in the matter of obtain- ing an order of injunction what is the in- fraction of its right (State of Andhra Pradesh). Admittedly, Scheme A re- quires a review in terms of the order of the Tribunal by May, 2000 and this re- quirement if read with the decision as above in O.S. (1) of 1997, the rights of the riparian owners, can not but be said to be still in the stage of fluidity rather than settled and confirmed and grant of an order of injunction at this stage would neither be fair nor reasonable in the con- textual facts though however the sub- missions of Mr. Ganguly does not seem to be illogical, but having regard to the present contextual situation, I am unable to agree with the submissions in favour of the grant of injunction the situation is not conducive for the grant, neither the grant is warranted at this juncture. Gen- erally speaking, however, be it noted that the issue of grant of injunction is to be looked from the point of view as to whether on refusal of the injunction, the Plaintiff would suffer irreparable loss of injury keeping in view the strength of the parties' case. Balance of convenience or inconvenience is also another require- ment but no fixed rules or notions ought to be had in the matter of grant of injunc- tion and the relief being always flexible depending upon the facts and circum- stances of each case. The justice of the situation ought to be the guiding factor (vide the decision of this COURt in Colgate Palmolive (India) Ltd. v. Hindustan Lever Ltd. [JT 1999 (6) SC 89 = 1999 (7) SCC P.1] myself being a party to the judgment). In the contextual facts, there- fore, question of grant of any order of in- junction in my view would not arise. (133) AS noticed above, the height of Almatti Dam is the principal issue in O.S.No.2 of 1997: the question therefore arises as to whether non-acceptance of the case of the Plaintiff would mean and imply acceptance of the prayer of the Defendant No.1 to erect Almatti Dam at an height of FRL 524 mt - the answer however, cannot but be in the negative; more so by reason of the surrounding circumstances. The contentions of the two riparian owners and the specific lan- guage of Article 131 of the Constitution and having regard to the assertion of the State of Karnataka of its right to control its supply of water in the manner as it deems fit, interference with the proposal shall have to be had to sub-serve the ends of justice. The contentions of the two riparian owners and the specific lan- guage of Article 131 of the Constitution and having regard to the assertion of the State of Karnataka of its right to control its supply of water in the manner as it deems fit, interference with the proposal shall have to be had to sub-serve the ends of justice. But before proceeding further in this matter, it would be useful to refer to one of the decisions of this COURt in the case of State of Karnataka v. Un- ion of India [1978 (2) SCR 1] wherein Bhagwati, J. observed: "We cannot construe Article 131 as con- fined to cases where the dispute relates to the existence or extent of the legal right of the plaintiff, for to do so, would be to read words in the Article which are not there. It seems that because the mode of proceeding provided in Part III of the Supreme COURt Rules for bringing a dispute before the Supreme COURt un- der Article 131 is a suit, that we are un- consciously influenced to import the no- tion of 'cause of action', which is ger- mane in a suit, in the interpretation of Article 131 and to read this article as limited only to cases where some legal right of the plaintiff is infringed and con- sequently, it has a 'cause of action' against the defendant. But it must be remembered that there is no reference to a suit or 'cause of action' in Article 131 and that article confers jurisdiction on the Supreme COURt with reference to the charaCTEr of the dispute which may be brought before it for adjudication. The requirement of 'cause of action', which is so necessary in a suit, cannot, there- fore, be imported while construing the scope and ambit of Article 131. The requirement of 'cause of action', which is so necessary in a suit, cannot, there- fore, be imported while construing the scope and ambit of Article 131. It is no doubt true that the judgment delivered by me in the State of Rajasthan v. Un- ion of India proceeds on the assump- tion that a suit under Article 131 can be instituted only if some right of the plain- tiff is infringed, but there was no proper discussion of this question in the COURse of the arguments in that case and on fuller consideration, I think that no such restriction can be imported in the con- struction of Article 131 so as to narrow down the ambit and coverage of that ar- ticle. The only requirement necessary for attracting the applicability of Article 131 is that the dispute must be one in- volving any question "on which the ex- istence or extent of a legal right" de- pends, irrespective whether the legal right is claimed by one party or the other and it is not necessary that some legal right of the plaintiff should be infringed before a suit can be brought under that Article. The plaintiff must of COURse be a party to the dispute and obviously it cannot be a party to the dispute unless it is affeCTEd by it." Chandrachud, J. also in the same judg- ment and in the same vein observed: "I consider that the Constitution has pur- posefully conferred on this COURt a juris- diction which is untrammeled by consid- erations which fetter the jurisdiction of a COURt of first instance, which entertains and tries suits of a civil nature. The very nature of the disputes arising under Arti- cle 131 is different, both in form and sub- stance, from the nature of claims which require adjudication in ordinary suits." (134) IN my opinion, the view expressed above amply represents the true mean- ing and purport of Article 131 of the Con- stitution. It is a constitutional conferment of jurisdiction in regard to certain speci- fied matters which is required to be de- cided by the Apex COURt by reason of the nature of the differences and disputes. This conferment of jurisdiction is under special circumstances and for special reasons having the concept of justice being the predominant factor behind the inclusion of such an Article in the Consti- tution. This conferment of jurisdiction is under special circumstances and for special reasons having the concept of justice being the predominant factor behind the inclusion of such an Article in the Consti- tution. Ordinary rules or procedure can- not be made applicable in such special circumstances. On the wake of the above and by reason of the decision of this COURt to do complete justice between the parties, more so having regard to the powers conferred on to this COURt under Article 142 of the Constitution, this COURt in my view has the power, authority and jurisdiction to pass any order or issue any direction as may be found necessary for the ends of justice and I need not dilate on the same since the law is well settled on that score. It will however be useful to note down certain factual events in this perspective and at this juncture. (135) AT the instance of the Prime Minis- ter of India, four Chief Ministers were re- quested to intervene and consider the proposal of the State of Karnatakato have the Almatti Dam up to the height of FRL 524 mt. The four Chief Ministers in their turn, however, appointed by consent of each other, an Expert Committee which has observed that question of the height being raised to FRL 524 mt. at this stage would not arise and as a matter of fact Dam height upto FRL 519 mt. would oth- erwise be conducive without offending any of the realities of the situation. Ad- mittedly, Almatti is for storage purposes and since as per the existing arrange- ment, allocations are limited and re- striCTEd, question of further storage would not arise. This aspect of the matter has been highlighted by Brother Pattanaik, as also by Brother Majmudar, in his concur- rent judgment and as such I need not di- late excepting recording that the appre- hension expressed by Shri Andhyrujina as regards the flooding of the area in the event of the height of the Almatti Dam is raised or increased require serious con- sideration of the matter by the experts. The apprehension of Mr. The apprehension of Mr. Ganguly appear- ing in support of the Plaintiff State of Andhra Pradesh also very strenuously contended that in the event of an increase in dam height, no water would be avail- able for the Kharif Crop to be raised, is also of some substance by reason of the express stand of the State of Karnataka that the deficiency of water supply in the month of August, September and Octo- ber can be met immediately thereafter. It is this admitted case that the Kharif crop would be a total wash out in the event no water is available in July, August and Sep- tember: Storage facility at Nagarjuna Sagar Srisailem and Kalahasti would not really alleviate the situation. Earlier in this judgment I have stated that peculiarities are the charaCTErs of the rivers in this country -whereas one is in spate causing a tremendous amount of flood damage, the other is totally dry causing an equal amount of dry famine season and on the wake of the aforesaid, the apprehensions expressed by both the States OF MAHARASTRA and Andhra Pradesh do not seem to be baseless and as such the same needs serious consideration by the concerned Authority or Authorities at the time of re-consideration of Scheme 'A' in terms of our judgment in O.S.No. 1 of 1997. (136) IN that view of the matter I record my concurrence with the findings of Brother Pattanaik, that by reason of the report of the experts, the Almatti Dam and its upper limit can be placed at FRL 519 subject however, to clearances from ap- propriate authority or authorities as re- quired under the law. I am also in con- currence with Brother Pattanaik, that question of raising the ultimate height at Almatti could be gone into by the Tribu- nal upon assessment of the situation as placed by the riparian States and upon assessment of the apprehension of sub- mergence and the apprehension of loss of Kharif crop as well. The Tribunal is di- reCTEd to look into the matter if and when occasion arises as regards the alloca- tion of water in River Krishna basin to- tally uninfluenced by the observations made by the earlier Tribunal's view by reason of long lapse of time and the avail- ability of modern techNOLogy. The suit (O.S. 2 cf 1907) stands disposed of ac- cordingly. No order as to costs. The suit (O.S. 2 cf 1907) stands disposed of ac- cordingly. No order as to costs. SETHI. J. (137) WHILE agreeing with the main judgments of brother Pattanaik, J. in Original Suits Nos. 1 and 2 of 1997 and supplementary concurring judgment of brother Majumdar, J. in Original Suit No. 2 of 1997, I am persuaded to place on record some of my observations in addition, which have been necessitated on account of the ureasonable, unrealistic, motivated and contradictory attitudes adopted and changed from time to time by the riparian States of Krishna river basin, obviously under local pressures and political compulsions. It is hoped and expeCTEd from responsible representative governments of the States concerned that they would give due weight to the tremendous work done by the Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal and realise their constitutional obligations to the nation, being important and mighty Constituents of the Federation, the Union of India, keeping in view our observations in the Judgment. (138) WATER is a unique gift of nature which has made the planet earth habitable. Life can not be sustained without water. In the National Water Policy issued by the Government of India in 1987, it was declared that water is a prime natural resource, a basic human need and a precious national asset. Water, like air, is the essence for human survival. The history of water availability and its user is tied up with the history of biological evolution in all civilizations. It will not be wrong to say that not only the life started in water but rather water is life itself. It is essential for mankind, animals, environment, flora and fauna. There is no denial of the fact that in the ancient times water played an important role in the origin, development and growth of civilization all over the globe. Water is an important factor in the economic development of the countries which ultimately affects the social and human relations between the habitants. Planned development and proper utilization of water resources can serve both as a cause as well as an effect of the prosperity of a nation. Water on earth is available in the from of frozen snow, rivers, lakes, springs, water ways, water falls and aqueducts, etc. (139) IN this galaxy and the environment surrounding the earth, its hydrosphere segment mostly consists of water in the shape of oceans. Water on earth is available in the from of frozen snow, rivers, lakes, springs, water ways, water falls and aqueducts, etc. (139) IN this galaxy and the environment surrounding the earth, its hydrosphere segment mostly consists of water in the shape of oceans. Out of the total available water on earth 97.3 water is such which can not be utilised for the benefit of the humanity. Only 2.07 water is available for consumption and mankind's utilization. Out of this consumable water 30 is used for irrigation, 7 for domestic and 12 for industrial purposes. Rest of the water goes waste on account of mismanagement and the lack of facilities of better utilisation. Whereas water is scarce and limited, its users are numerous and ever increasing. With the development in the living standards of the people, the consumption of the water is increasing everyday without there being any corresponding increase in its total availability. According to an estimate in World Book Encyclopaedia, on an average a person needs about 60,600 litres of water during his life time and in industrial countries like U.S.A. each person presently its using about 260 litres of water every day. The consumption in our country is however much less. On account of the advancement in the techNOLogy and of civilization, water needs are increasing. In their quest to have comfortable life, people want more and more water. Facilities like ACs., garbage disposal, automatic washers and modern bathrooms, earlier considered as luxury are now deemed as necessities of life of a large human population. (140) INDIA is one of the most fortunate countries endowed with enviable wealth of water resources. The average annual precipitation in this country is higher than that of any other continent in the world with the exception of South America. However, on account of meagre resources and lack of developmental facilities, India uses only 1/1 Oth of the precipitation which it receives annually with the result that the rest of water goes waste into the sea. The sources of water in this country are either the frozen snow which melts in summer or accumulated water in dams during monsoon seasons which is utilised off that season. In the absence of proper water source management, great population of the people suffer every year on account of either the floods or droughts. Geographically, India has more than 20 major river basins. In the absence of proper water source management, great population of the people suffer every year on account of either the floods or droughts. Geographically, India has more than 20 major river basins. Some of those, such as Indus, Chenab, Ganga, Brahamputra and Teestha, though origination from and flowing in India are yet in effect and essence, international rivers as they pass through the territories of other sovereign States. (141) DESPITE independence for more than half a century, the country has not been in a position to construct more than 3000 large and small dams with the result that most of the water otherwise available in the country remains unutilised. Almost in all countries of the world, efforts are being made to regulate the user of water resources alongwith the user of the land resources. Water management is required to be viewed in the light of the land management. The law relating to water rights has undergone a sea change all over the world. International and inter- state disputes regarding the user of water are sought to be settled by reCOURse to the process of law in place of the old doctrine or settlement "by war or diplomacy". Water under all prevalent systems of law has been declared to be the property of the public and dedicated to their use, subject to appropriation and limitations as may be prescribed either under law or by settlement or by adjudication. The disputes relating to water management, its development and its distribution are to be considered not from rigid technical or legal angle but from the pre-eminently important humanitarian point of view as water wealth admittedly forms a focal point and basis for the biological essence and assistance of socio-economic progress and well being of human folk of all the countries. In resolution of the disputes relating to development, management and distribution of the water reliance has to be placed upon the long usage, customs, prevalent practices, rules, regulation Acts and judicial decisions. There is no dispute that under the constitutional scheme in our country right to water is a right to life and thus a fundamental right. In India the importance of water is recognised under the Constitution as is evident from Article 262, 7th Schedule List II Entry 17, List I, Entry 56, and Statutes like Inter-State Water Disputes Act, 1956 and Rivers Boards Act, 1956. In India the importance of water is recognised under the Constitution as is evident from Article 262, 7th Schedule List II Entry 17, List I, Entry 56, and Statutes like Inter-State Water Disputes Act, 1956 and Rivers Boards Act, 1956. (142) THE controversy, in the present proceedings, amongst the States OF MAHARASTRA, Karnataka and Andhra Pradesh is with respect to the utilisation of the water of Krishna river which is the second largest river in the peninsular India. The river has a total length of 870 miles originating from Western Ghats near Mahabaleshwer and flows through parts of the aforesaid three States. The Krishna river basin has an area of about one lakh sq. miles which directly affects about 39 million inhabitants of the three States. The water of this river has been the bone of contention between the riparian States for over a period of one and a half century. It was only in 1855 when the Krishna Delta Canal System was commenced to properly regulate the user of water of this river. After re- organisation of the States in November, 1956, the Central Water and Power Commission drew up scheme for re- allocation of Krishna Waters which was not accepted by the concerned States with the result that an Inter-State Conference was held in September, 1960 but as no settlement could be arrived at, the matter was ultimately referred to the Tribunal for adjudication which submitted its reports Exhibits PK1 and PK2 which have been elaborately dealt with in the main judgment. (143) FROM April, 1969, alongwith the underfined huge water, national assets being the public money has flown through the river into the Bay of Bengal on account of pending litigation. Despite huge expenditure incurred and momentous job performed by the Tribunal, the most acceptable solution regarding distribution of water was not accepted by the concerned States on pretexts and under the wrangles of technicalities. Even the States initially accepting the reports of the Tribunal have been changing their stands which resulted in keeping the matter alive, notwiTHStanding the consequential losses but obviously for the concerned States convenience primarily actuated by political considerations and changes but apparently for proclaimed interests of their inhabitants. Even the States initially accepting the reports of the Tribunal have been changing their stands which resulted in keeping the matter alive, notwiTHStanding the consequential losses but obviously for the concerned States convenience primarily actuated by political considerations and changes but apparently for proclaimed interests of their inhabitants. (144) THE dismissal and disposal of the suits filed by the States of Karnataka and Andhra Pradesh and rejection of the plea raised by MAHARASTRA in its additional written statement would not settle the dispute or solve the problem but unfortunately will become the basis of new litigation between the States which is surely likely to adversely affect their inhabitants resulting in the wastage of the waters of Krishna which otherwise has been found in abundance. It is hoped that as and when action is initiated upon our judgment, the Tribunal or the authority appointed in consequence thereof, for the purposes shall expedite the matter and ensure that the most precious gift of nature water and the public money is not wasted in uncalled for, avoidable and imaginary litigation. It is not disputed that in the absence of the Reservoir System under Scheme B as formulated by the Tribunal, a lot of water of Krishna is wasted and permitted to submerge in the Bay of Bengal. Let better sense prevail upon all concerned to ensure the safety of the river and proper utilisation of its water for the benefit of inhabitants of the Krishna river basin. PATTANAIK, J. (145) THE State of Andhra Pradesh has filed the suit under Article 131 of the Con- stitution of India, impleading the State of Karnataka, Union of India and Stp.te OF MAHARASTRA as party defendants, seek- ing relief of declaration and mandatory in- junction on the allegation that the State of Karnataka, in particular has made gross violations of the decision of Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal and such viola- tions have adversely affeCTEd the resi- dents of the State of Andhra Pradesh. The relief sought for in the suit are as under: "(a) declare that the report /decision dated 24.12.1973 and the further REOCIRT/ decision dated 27.5.1976 of the Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal (KWDT) in their entirety are binding upon the three riparian States OF MAHARASTRA, Karnataka and Andhra Pradesh and also the Union of India;- (b) declare that the riparian States are duty bound to fully disclose to each other and also to the Union of India all partic- ulars of all projects undertaken or pro- posed after December, 1973 and May, 1976 and to direct the defendants to en- sure that execution thereof are in con- formity with and do not conflict with or violate the decisions of the KWDT and they do not adversely affect the rights of the other riparian States; © declare that the party States are en- titled to utilise not more than the quan- tity of water which is allocated or per- mitted by the decisions of the KWDT for the respective projects of the respective party States before the Tribunal; and that any variation in either storage or utilisa- tion of the waters by each such State in respect of each of such projects could only be with the prior consent or concur- rence of the other riparian States; (d) declare that all the projects executed and/or which are in the process of ex- ecution by the State of Karnataka which are not in conformity with and conflict with or violate the decisions of the KWDT, as illegal and unauthorised, (e) declare that approvals /sanctions/ clearances/ in-principle clearances granted by the Union of India on or after KWDT decisions on 24.12.1973 and on 27.5.1976 in respect of schemes/pro- jects undertaken by the Government of Karnataka are invalid and direct the Un- ion Government to review /reconsider all such schemes/ projects proposed / un- dertaken by Karnataka, afresh, after ob- taining the views thereon of the other riparian States; (f) declare that the State of Karnataka and MAHARASTRA shall not be entitled to claim any rights preferential or otherwise in respect of storage, control and use of waters of the inter-State river Krishna in respect of the schemes /projects not au- thorised by the decision of the KWDT; (g) declare that the Union Government is duty bound to consult all the riparian States OF MAHARASTRA, Karnataka and Andhra Pradesh before according any approvals / sanctions / clearances / in- principle clearances to any schemes / projects proposed / undertaken by any of the riparian States on the inter-State river Krishna and direct the Union Gov- ernment to act in terms of the said dec- laration; (h) grant a mandatory injunction direct- ing the State of Karnataka to undo all its illegal, unauthorised actions regard- ing projects/ schemes and in particular the following projects executed by it con- trary to the decisions of KWDT so as to bring them in conformity with the said decisions: Almatti Dam under UKP Construction of Canals/Lifts Schemes on Almatti Reservoir. Upper Krishna Projects in K-2 Sub-ba- sin. Hippargi Weir/Irrigation Schemes. Construction of Indi and Rampur Lift Schemes on Narayanpur reservoir and the canals. Hon'ble COURt on the report of the team of experts, grant an order of injunction restraining the Defendant No. 1 State of Karnataka from proceeding with any fur- ther construction in any of the following projects/schemes: Almatti Dam under UKP Construction of Canals/ Lifts Schemes on Almatti Reservoir (i) grant a permanent injunction restrain- ing the State of Karnataka from under- taking, continuing or proceeding with any further construction in respect of the fol- lowing projects: Almatti Dam under UKP Construction of Canals/Lifts Schemes on Almatti Reservoir Upper Krishna Projects in K-2 Sub-ba- sin. Hippargi Weir/Irrigation Schemes. Construction of Indi and Rampur Lift Schemes on Narayanpur reservoir and the canals. (j) appoint a team of experts for making a comprehensive techno-economic evaluation and environmental impact analysis in respect of the following projects and, pending orders of this Upper Krishna Projects in K-2 Sub-ba- sin. ^__-. Hippargi Weir/Irrigation Scheme. Construction of Indi and Rampur Lift Schemes on Narayanpur Reservoir and the canals. (j) appoint a team of experts for making a comprehensive techno-economic evaluation and environmental impact analysis in respect of the following projects and, pending orders of this Upper Krishna Projects in K-2 Sub-ba- sin. ^__-. Hippargi Weir/Irrigation Scheme. Construction of Indi and Rampur Lift Schemes on Narayanpur Reservoir and the canals. (k) to issue a permanent injunction re- straining the Defendant No. 1 State of Karnataka from growing or allowing to grow sugarcane or raising other wet crops in the command areas falling un- der the projects/schemes within the Up- per Krishna Project; (i) pass a decree in terms of prayers (a) to (k); and (m) award costs of the present proceed- ing in favour of the Plaintiff; (n) pass such further decree or decrees or other orders as this Hon'ble COURt may deem fit in the facts and circumstances of the case." (146) THOUGH there are as many as 14 re- liefs sought for as stated above, but es- sentially the reliefs relate to the construc- tion of Almatti Dam under Upper Krishna Project by the State of Karnataka to a height of 524.256 m. Though the aver- ments of facts in the plaint have been made in 71 paragraphs, shorn of minute details, the same may be stated as un- der: (147) THAT the dispute between the three riparian States namely MAHARASTRA, Karnataka and Andhra Pradesh with re- spect to use, distribution and control of the water of inter-State river Krishna stood resolved by the decisions of the Tribunal, constituted under Section 4 of the Inter-State Water Disputes Act, 1956 (hereinafter referred to as 'the Act') by the decision rendered in 1973 and the further decision rendered in 1976. The said decision having been notified by the Central Government under Section 6, became binding on all parties. All the parties-States being constituents of the Federation of Republic of India, the plain- tiff expeCTEd that each State, while un- dertaking their projects for utilisation of the quantity of water allocated in their favour by the Tribunal would consult with the other concerned States and would so use, which will not be against the decision of the Tribunal in any manner. But the State of Karnataka has not been acting in accordance with the letter and spirit of the decision of the Tribunal and on the other hand has violated the ex- pressed terms and conditions of the Tri- bunal, which compelled the State of Andhra Pradesh to invoke the jurisdic- tion of the Supreme COURt under Article 131 of tne Constitution. After indicating the topography of the river as well as the three riparian States and the disputes which arose between the States that lead the Central Government to consti- tute the Krishna Water Disputes Tribu- nal, the plaintiff has stated that the Tri- bunal framed seven main issues and un- der issue No. II with its eight sub-issues, decided the question of equitable appor- tionment of the beneficial use of the wa- ters of the river Krishna and the river Val- ley by evolving Scheme "A" and making the same as its Final Order or decision, which became binding on all the parties, after the same was notified by the Un- ion Government under Section 6 of the Act. It is not necessary for us to reiter- ate all the facts leading to the raising of disputes and constitution of the Tribu- nal, which we have already narrated in judgment in O.S.I of 1997, filed by the State of Karnataka. The plaintiff then has averred as to how on the basis of agree- ment between the parties, the 75 de- pendable flow at Vijayawada was found to be 2060 TMC and while considering the case of each State for allocation of their respective share of water in re- spect of the aforesaid 75 of depend- able flow, several projects in the river basin, already undertaken by the States as well as the quantity of water required for the projects were considered by the Tribunal on the basis of which the ulti- mate figure of allocation were arrived at. According to the plaint, the Tribunal, while restraining the States OF MAHARASTRA and Mysore from using more water than allocated in their favour, granted liberty to the plaintiff-State of Andhra Pradesh to use the remaining water with the rider that the State of Andhra Pradesh will not acquire any right to the user of such water except to the extent allocated to it. The plaintiff also averred that while making allocation to the three States, no express provisions were made for sharing of any deficiency and further the Tribunal took note of the fact that out of 100 years, deficiency may occur in 25 years. It was also averred that to relieve the State of Andhra Pradesh from the aforesaid difficulty, the Tribunal permitted the State of Andhra Pradesh to store water in the Nagarjunasagar Dam and in Srisailem Dam and held that for such storage, there would not be any deduction from its share out of the dependable flow on the ground that if the water is not allowed to be stored by the plaintiff-State, then it would flow down and get submerged in the sea. According to the plaint, the Tri- bunal did consider the different project reports which had been produced before it, in relation to the Upper Krishna Project and allowing the proteCTEd utilisation of 103 TMC, it came to the conclusion that the demand of State of Karnataka to the extent of 52 TMC to be utilised by Narayanpur Right Bank Canal is worth consideration. After enumerating the different clauses of the Final Order of the Tribunal in its original report of 1973, the plaintiff has averred that though the Tribunal has made allocation enbloc in a negative form namely that the State cannot utilise more than the allocable quantity of water in its share in any wa- ter year but the said enbloc allocation has to be read in the light of the relevant stand of the parties before the Tribunal, the facts and figures produced before the Tribunal and the ultimate basis on which the conclusion was arrived at. According to the plaintiff, by taking re- COURse to the aforesaid method, it would be crystal clear that party-States were restrained from utilising in different sub- basins of river Krishna within their re- spective territory, beyond what was con- sidered as the protective use and the additional quantity allocated to their share. According to the plaintiff, by taking re- COURse to the aforesaid method, it would be crystal clear that party-States were restrained from utilising in different sub- basins of river Krishna within their re- spective territory, beyond what was con- sidered as the protective use and the additional quantity allocated to their share. It has been averred in the plaint that so far as Upper Krishna Project is concerned within the State of Karnataka, the Tribunal has allocated only 160 TMC of water for being used and the construc- tion of almatti Dam to the height of 524 meters, as indicated by the State of Karnataka, would, therefore, on the face of it, is in violation of the decision of the Tribunal. After referring to the different applications for clarifications sought for by different States under Section 5(3) of the Act and the answer of the Tribunal on the same, the plaintiff has also averred as to how the Tribunal dealt with the contentions raised by the State OF MAHARASTRA before it, in relation to the allocation of 52 TMC of water from Narayanpur Right Bank Canal. Accord- ing to the plaintiff, though, no doubt in the Final Order of the Tribunal, there has been a mass allocation of water in fa- vour of the three riparian States out of the 2060 TMC of water under 75 of de- pendability at Vijayawada, which figure was arrived at by consent of the parties, but a closer scrutiny of the report in its entirety being examined, it would be ap- parent that the allocation in respect of different sub-basins had been made on the basis of projects undertaken in those sub-basins and consequently, no State would be entitled to use the entire quan- tity of water allocated in their favour in any particular sub-basin. The plaintiff, then has averred that the post award de- velopments undertaken by the State of Karnataka, intending to raise the height of almatti Dam to 524 meters is nothing but a gross violation of the decision of the Tribunal and, therefore, this court' should injunct the State of Karnataka in going ahead with the Almatti Dam upto the height of 524 meters, as indicated in its project. The plaintiff then referred to several correspondence made between the State of Karnataka and State of Andhra Pradesh inter se, as well as correspondence between these States and Union Government and Central Water Commission. It has also been averred that allowing the State of Karnataka to construct the dam at Almatti up to a height of 524 metres would be grossly detrimental to the lower riparian state of Andhra Pradesh inas- much as for three monTHS in a year from July to September, the State of Andhra Pradesh may go dry and the entire crop in the State would get damaged for pau- city of water. The plaintiff also has averred in several paragraphs of the plaint, as to how the plaintiff-State has been demanding from the State of Karnataka to have suitable information in relation to the construction of the dam at Almatti and how the plaintiff-State has been prevented from being favoured with any such information. In paragraph 34 of the plaint, the plaintiff refers to the letter addressed to the Chief Minister of Andhra Pradesh by the then Union Min- ister for Water Resources, proposing to convene a meeting of Chief Ministers of the Krishna basin States for discussing Upper Krishna Project Stage-ll and along with the said letter, the observation of Central Water Commission, indicating how the project at Almatti creates a physical capability of water utilisation in excess of 173 TMC, which would be possible in view of the proposed top of the radial gate at FRL 521 meters against the required level of 518.7 me- ters for utilisation of 173 TMC of water. In the subsequent paragraph of the plaint, it has also been indicated as to how the State of Andhra Pradesh has been objecting to the proposals of the State of Karnataka to have the height of Almatti Dam at 524 meters under the guise of flood protection measure and then how the plaintiff State requested the Prime Minister of India to intervene in the matter to avoid violation of the award of the Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal. In paragraph 39 of the plaint, it has been averred that the Union Government as well as the Central Water Commission which are responsible for clearance of inter-State Projects, bent upon clearing the Almatti Project up to a dam height of 524 meters without even consulting the State of Andhra Pradesh, though, ac- cording to the plaintiff in a Federal Struc- ture of the Government, each constitu- ent State would be entitled to know the progress of any project in relation to in- ter-State river, since it may have sev- eral adverse effects on the other States. The plaintiff also averred that at the be- hest of the State of andhra Pradesh, the United Front Government, which was at the Centre, constituted a Committee of four Chief Ministers to examine the is- sues relating to the construction of Almatti Dam, which committee in turn, decided to constitute an Expert Commit- tee with a representative of the Central Water Commission and Planning Com- mission, who, however, did not ultimately participate in the proceedings. The said Expert Committee has found that the proposal of the Upper Krishna Project with FRL of 524.256 meters for Almatti Dam is under consideration and has not been approved by the Government of India, though many canals have been designed and construCTEd for larger capacity meant for future uses and it is not necessary to build a bigger storage of 227 TMC at Almatti Dam with top of shutter at 524.256 meters. The said Committee had also observed that the FRL on the top of the shutter be fixed for the present at 519 .6 meters and the gates be manufactured and ereCTEd ac- cordingly and this will be adequate to take care of the annual requirements of 173 TMC presently envisaged under the Up- per Krishna Project. The said Commit- tee, therefore, suggested the restriction of the height of the dam at 519.6 me- ters. The plaintiff however does not ac- cept of the entitlement of the first defend- ant to use 173 TMC under UKP and the height of the dam at 519.6 meters. The said Commit- tee, therefore, suggested the restriction of the height of the dam at 519.6 me- ters. The plaintiff however does not ac- cept of the entitlement of the first defend- ant to use 173 TMC under UKP and the height of the dam at 519.6 meters. From paragraph 52 onwards, the plaintiff then has made averments indicating the ne- gotiations and further developments in the matter and then states that the Min- istry of Power, Government of India hav- ing indicated that 'in principle' clearance of construction of Upper Krishna Hydro- electric power project at Almatti, con- templating the height of the dam at 524.256 meters was contrary to the award of the Tribunal, and therefore, the plaintiff-State lodged its objections by letter dated 18th of October, 1996, to which the reply came that 'in principle' clearance is not a techno-economic clearance and it is purely an adminis- trative action to facilitate developmental activities. The plaintiff, thereafter by its letter dated 18th of December, 1996, requested the Secretary, Ministry of Water Resources, Govt. of India to en- sure forthwith the publication in the Gazette of India the decision of the Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal i.e. the report dated 24.12.1973 and the further report dated 27.5.1976 in its entirety. But since it became apparent that the Defendant No. 1 State of Karnataka was not at all inclined to resolve the problem by any amicable discussion nor did it desire any effort for mediation being un- dertaken by anyone whatsoever, the plaintiff had no other alternative but to approach this COURt under Article 131 of the Constitution for declarations and in- junctions against the Defendants for protection of the rights of the plaintiff State as well as the rights of its inhabit- ants flowing from the decision of the Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal. From paragraph 65 onwards, the plaintiff has narrated several facts constituting vio- lations of the decision of the Tribunal by the State of Karnataka and from para- graph 69 onwards, the plaintiff has indi- cated the role played by the Central Gov- ernment in the matter of allowing the State of Karnataka to raise the height of the dam, which would ultimately lead to violation of the terms and conditions as well as the restrictions in the award of the Tribunal and which would infringe the rights of the State of Andhra Pradesh and its inhabitants. The cause of action for filing the suit has been indicated in paragraph 73 of the plaint, namely indul- gence of the State of Karnataka in going ahead with the Upper Krishna Project Stage I and II with the construction of the Almatti Dam which is in violation of the decision of the Tribunal in letter and spirit. (148) DEFENDANT No. 1- State of Karnataka in its written statement, took the stand that the Tribunal had not made any project-wise allocation and on the other hand, the allocation is enbloc and as such the question of interpreting the decision of the Tribunal to the effect that there is restriction in the user of water in any particular basin is not correct. It has been further averred that the State of Karnataka had contemplated the height of the Dam at Almatti as 524.256 m in the Project Report of 1970 itself and that Report had been filed before the Tribunal and had been marked as docu- ment MYPK-3. Neither the State of Andhra Pradesh nor any other State had raised any objection to the said Project Report and there was no issue before the Tribunal on that score and in fact the height of the Almatti Dam was not a matter of adjudication before the Tribu- nal. In this view of the matter, the plain- tiff-State is not entitled to raise that is- sue on the purported allegation that it amounts to violation of the decision of the Tribunal. It is also contented that an identical issue having been raised by an individual by filing a writ petition in the Andhra Pradesh and after dismissal of the same, the matter having been brought to this COURt and the order of the Andhra Pradesh High COURt has been affirmed, the same question cannot be re-agitated by filing a suit by the State under Article 131 of the Constitution of India. In respect of the decision of the Committee, which stated about the FRL 519.6 m, it has been averred in the writ- ten statement that the said Committee considered the height at 519.6 meters to be sufficient, taking into account the storage capacity of the dam which will take care of the annual requirement of 173 TMC in a water year but it did not take into account the further water that may be needed for generation of power and the project at Almatti with the height of the dam beyond 519.6 meters and up to 524.256 meters being only for power generation and the water thus used for power generation being non-consump- tive, there is no question of violation of any direction of the Tribunal when the State of Karnataka has decided to have the height of the dam at Almatti at 524.256 meters. It has been specifically averred in the written statement that the decision of the Tribunal which has been Gazetted under Section 6 of the Act has not imposed any restriction on any State for construction of any Project and on the other hand Clause XV expressly mentioned that : "Nothing in the order of the Tribunal shall impair the right or power or authority of any State to regu- late within its boundaries the use of wa- ter, or to enjoy the benefit of water within that State in a manner not inconsistent with the order of this Tribunal" and in view of such specific provision, it is fu- tile for the State of Andhra Pradesh to contend that the height of the dam at Almatti should not be raised to 524.256 meters. The defendant has further averred that the Project at Almatti has been undertaken at huge cost exceed- ing Rs.6,000 crores and it is not in na- tional interest to stop the project at this advance stage and the suit has been filed with the design to cause delay in the completion of the projects under- taken by the State of Karnataka. It has been reiterated that the utilisation of water would be entirely within the allo- cated quantity made by the Tribunal. According to Defendant No. 1, the plain- tiff has not made out any case of breach of its legal rights and, therefore the suit under Article 131 of the Constitution is not maintainable. It has been reiterated that the utilisation of water would be entirely within the allo- cated quantity made by the Tribunal. According to Defendant No. 1, the plain- tiff has not made out any case of breach of its legal rights and, therefore the suit under Article 131 of the Constitution is not maintainable. The defendant also narrated the background under which the Central Government set up the Tribunal for adjudication of the disputes between the riparian States and how ultimately the Tribunal gave its report, stating therein the facts found as well as the decision thereon. The defendant State has also stated in the written statement that the Almatti Dam has been designed for utilisation of 173 TMC for Upper Krishna Project in two stages and the State had indicated that height, right from the inception before the Tribunal it- self, though neither any party raised any objection nor any issue was struck, nor any decision thereon has been given by the Tribunal itself and in this view of the matter any grievance with regard to the height of the dam at Almatti would be a fresh water dispute and would not come within the adjudicated dispute and deci- sion thereon by the Tribunal itself and, therefore, the suit filed under Article 131 is not maintainable. It has been specifi- cally averred that the storage level at Almatti Dam from 519.6 meters to 524.256 meters is not at all an increase, particularly, when the Tribunal itself ex- pressly noted the contemplated comple- tion of the Almatti Dam to the full height that is the height in Exhibit MYPK-3. The defendant also referred to the report of the Central Water Commission dated January 30, 1994, whereunder it has been indicated that since the power gen- eration is contemplated under the project at Almatti by way of utilising the extra storage of water between 519.60 meters and 521 meters, the project may be treated as a multi-purpose project (the level required to utilise 173 TMC of wa- ter for irrigation is 519.60 meters). The Defendant-State of Karnataka has spe- cifically averred that even though the dam height is raised to this final level of 524.256 meters, the quantity of water that could be utilised for irrigation is only 173 TMC as per allocation made in the Award and any additional quantity over and above 173 TMC will be let out into the river after generating power. It has also been contended that the dispute raised being a water dispute in respect of an inter-State river, the same is gov- erned by Article 262 of the Constitution read with Section 11 of the Inter-State Water Disputes Act, and therefore, suit under Article 131 is not maintainable. All allegations made by the plaintiff about the misuse of position have been denied. It has also been denied that neither there is any requirement of the decision of the Tribunal nor any liability which compels any State to consult another State in the matter of planning of the projects for uti- lisation of its water resources and the contention raised by the State of Andhra Pradesh in this regard is wholly mis- conceived. The defendant further con- tends that the State of Andhra Pradesh not having utilised the opportunity to seek clarification under Section 5(3) of the Act with regard to the height of or any other specification of the Almatti Dam is not entitled to raise this dispute in this COURt by filing a suit under Article 131 of the Constitution. The defendant-State of Karnataka reiterated that the utilisation of water under the U.K.P. first at Almatti and lateral Narayanpur downstream, is entirely within the scope of 173 TMC and in any event within the aggregate share of 734 TMC allocated to the defendant Karnataka and the construction of the Upper Krishna Project at Almatti and at Narayanpur is all consistent with the work specifications prescribed by the Expert technical bodies in all respect including the provision for river sluices. In respect of Clause XV of the Final Or- der of the Tribunal, the defendant averred that the quantity of 155 TMC considered in respect of Upper Krishna Project does not restrict the defendant Karnataka from planning increased utilisations by taking into account quantities of 34 TMC regeneration, 23 TMC of water by diver- sion of Godavari waters and of 50 of the surplus flows becoming available after the adoption of Scheme "B" devised by the Tribunal. It is contended that the Tribunal having not provided for alloca- tion or utilisation project-wise, so long as there has been no contravention of the mass allocation made, the plaintiff has no grievance and is not entitled to file the suit. It has been stated in the written statement that in the re-submit- ted modified proposal dated 21st of April, 1996 for Upper Krishna Project Stage II as multi-purpose project, incor- porating compliance of the various com- ments of CWC and also then again pro- posing a FRL of 524.256 meters, clearly stating that even though the dam was to be raised to its final level of 524.256 m, the utilisation for irrigation would be only 173 TMC as per the readjustment of the project-wise allocations in the Master Plan within the scope of the Scheme "A" allocation of 729 TMC and as such, there has been no deviation, so far as the height of the dam at Almatti is con- cerned. With regard to the allegations made in the plaint, concerning develop- ment seeking a political solution to the dispute, the defendant-Karnataka denies all the averments made in that respect and asserts that execution of projects is within its entitlement and limits per- mitted by the decision of the Tribunal. With regard to the initiative taken by the Prime Minister of India by holding a meeting on 10.8.1996, it has been stated that such initiative was frustrated by the uncompromising and unreasonable at- titude of political leaders of Andhra Pradesh. So far as the Committee of four Chief Ministers are concerned, it has been averred that the Committee of Experts, constituted by the four Chief Ministers even did not frame any terms of reference for consideration, though requested by the State of Karnataka and it conduCTEd the proceedings in a sum- mary manner. So far as the Committee of four Chief Ministers are concerned, it has been averred that the Committee of Experts, constituted by the four Chief Ministers even did not frame any terms of reference for consideration, though requested by the State of Karnataka and it conduCTEd the proceedings in a sum- mary manner. The Chief Minister of Karnataka in fact had apprised the Chief Minister of West Bengal about the same by letter dated 19.12.1996 and after re- ceipt of the so-called report of the Ex- pert Committee, the Chief Minister of Karnataka had conveyed its reaction to the findings by his letter dated 25.2.1997 to which the Chief Minister of West Ben- gal had replied that the points are being examined and according to the State of Karnataka, the matter remained incon- clusive and as such cannot have any binding effect. In the written statement, the defendant no. 1 also averred that the findings of the said Expert Committee are erroneous. With regard to the alle- gations in the plaint that storage of huge quantity of water by construction of Almatti Dam would affect the interest of Andhra Pradesh and its inhabitants, the defendant Karnataka denies the same and also stated that the dam is intended to utilise about 173 TMC of water for ir- rigation and the remaining storage wa- ter will be used for non-consumptive purpose i.e., production of power and, therefore, the water will flow down to Andhra Pradesh and the said State will not be affeCTEd in any manner. With re- spect to allegations in the plaint regard- ing incorporation of Chamundi Power Corporation Ltd., the State of Karnataka has averred that the State is pursuing the matter before the Central Electricity Authority in accordance with law and the question of getting the consent of the plaintiff does not arise. So far as the assertions made in the plaint about the cascading and far-reaching effect on the environment is concerned, the State of Karnataka denies the same. On the question of alleged submergence, it has been averred that the State of Karnataka would take all adequate steps to provide compensation in accordance with law and rehabilitate the displaced population, if any. The assertions that Almatti Dam would render the major projects in Andhra Pradesh redundant, has been denied. On the question of alleged submergence, it has been averred that the State of Karnataka would take all adequate steps to provide compensation in accordance with law and rehabilitate the displaced population, if any. The assertions that Almatti Dam would render the major projects in Andhra Pradesh redundant, has been denied. So far as the allega- tion regarding violation of environmen- tal law is concerned, it has been averred in the written statement that the appli- cations for environmental clearance are under process by the Government of India and the State of Karnataka has not done anything without the appropriate clearance from the Appropriate Authori- ties. According to the defendant-State of Karnataka, the averments in the plaint are mis-leading and lacking of bona fides and all allegations and insinuations against the Chief Minister of Karnataka are denied. All other allegations of ille- gality being perpetuated by the State of Karnataka have been denied. So far as creation of Jal Nigam is concerned for effective execution of the Upper Krishna Project, the State of Karnataka contends that the said Nigam is wholly Govern- ment owned company and all its activi- ties are controlled by the Department of Irrigation, Govt. of Karnataka and, there- fore, the allegation of the plaintiff that the State is abdicating its responsibility for the execution of the project is incorrect and is denied. It has been categorically averred that the Karnataka State would be subjeCTEd to irreparable loss if the works at Almatti are stopped and the State of andhra Pradesh wants to reap the benefit of the liberty to use the sur- plus water flowing in the river in view of the mass allocation made in favour of the three States. It has been specifically averred that the storage of additional water between the height of 519.6 to 524.256 meters will bemused for power production only and not for irrigation till the augmentation of waters by Godavari diversion and surplus waters under Scheme "B" is made available. It has been specifically averred as to how the Government of Karnataka has sought for approval for taking up the cluster of hydel projects at Upper Krishna Project in phases and how the Central Electric- ity Authority has accorded "in-principle" clearance. It has been specifically averred as to how the Government of Karnataka has sought for approval for taking up the cluster of hydel projects at Upper Krishna Project in phases and how the Central Electric- ity Authority has accorded "in-principle" clearance. At the cost of repetition, the State of Karnataka has averred that there has been no deviation of the deci- sion of the Tribunal and the Almatti Dam has been planned for utilisation of the allocated water by the Tribunal in favour of the State of Karnataka. According to this defendant, the State of Andhra Pradesh being the last riparian State is recipient of abundant waters compris- ing the un-utilised share of upper riparian States in addition to its allocations made in its own favour and, therefore, no case has been made out establishing any in- jurious hardships so as to entitle the State to get a discretionary relief of in- junction. The defendant also averred that the plaintiff has not placed an iota of evidence based of any acceptable material establishing the alleged loss of drinking water, food grains or unemploy- ment and all such allegations are falacious. According to the State of Karnataka, all the revised schemes at all relevant times had been submitted before the Appropriate Authorities of the Central Government and projects are being taken up only after getting clear- ance from the competent authorities. It has been averred at the end that the basis of the suit being that the alloca- tion made by the Tribunal is project-wise and the said basis being in-correct, the plaintiff is not entitled to the reliefs prayed for by filing the suit under Article 131 of the Constitution. Union of India defendant no. 2 in its writ- ten statement raised the preliminary ob- jection about the maintainability of the suit on the ground that the suit as framed is not maintainable in view of Article 262 of the Constitution of India read with Sec- tion 11 of Inter-State Water Disputes Act, 1956. Union of India defendant no. 2 in its writ- ten statement raised the preliminary ob- jection about the maintainability of the suit on the ground that the suit as framed is not maintainable in view of Article 262 of the Constitution of India read with Sec- tion 11 of Inter-State Water Disputes Act, 1956. Generally denying the alle- gations made in the plaint the Union of India took the positive stand that Karnataka multipurpose project Stage II which envisages generation of Hydropower is still under examination and the project report provides for Hydropower generation by storing water at the addition of storage space from 519.6 m to 524.256 m and it has been indicated that after generating the Hydropower the tail race water after power generation will be let into the river Krishna and the utilisation of river Krishna water under UKP will be within 173 TMC. With regard to the plaint alle- gation that under the Award Tribunal has allocated water project wise, the Union of India submitted that the allocation of water is gross allocation and not the project wise allocation. It has been fur- ther stated that the State is entitled to utilise the gross amount of water for any such projects and so long as utilisation by Karnataka is within 173TMC in upper Krishna project, there is no violation of Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal Award. It has also been indicated that Stage I of UKP has been approved and Stage II is under various examination and not yet been approved. So far as the plaint case that Central Government is required to consult other States while clearing projects of one State, it has been averred that there is no obligation on the Central Government to consult said party State while clearing projects of other party State of Krishna basin when they are within the framework of KWDT Award. The financial assistance by Central Government is being given to the State in the shape of grants and loans. The financial assistance by Central Government is being given to the State in the shape of grants and loans. So far as Almatti project in par- ticular is concerned the stand of the Union Government in its written state- ment is that UKP stage I has already been approved and it was approved by the Planning Commission on 22nd April, 1978 under which the construction of Almatti Dam to a partial height corre- sponding to FRL 512.2 m with solid spillway crest level at EL 500 m and with 12.2 m high gates. But in view of the technical difficulty of dismentaling and reerecting the radial gates of such height in Stage II, the Government of Karnataka desired to do construction of Almatti Dam with full section as required for ul- timate stage and solid crest upto 512 m in UKP Stage I itself. The revised pro- posal of Government of Karnataka was examined by the Central Water Commis- sion and considered by Technical Ap- praisal Committee in its 20th Meeting held on 12.5.1982. The TAC recom- mended that the clearance of the Gov- ernment of India for raising Almatti Dam in full width upto EL 500 m may be ac- corded subject to the observation that revised estimate be submitted by the State Government. Subsequently, the State Government came up with modi- fied proposals with Almatti spillway crest at EL 509 m and 15.2 high radial gates with a view to reduce submergence un- der Stage I of the project. This revised stage I estimate got the approval of the Planning Commission on 24.4.1990. According to the written statement of the Central Government, Stage I of ukp was duly approved by the Central Water Commission as well as by the Planning Commission with certain modifications enabling the State Government to take upto Stage !l at later stage. It has fur- ther been averred that the Karnataka Government has revised Upper Krishna project Stage II (1993) as UKP Stage II Multipurpose project (1996) and that project is under examination. The State of Andhra Pradesh has sent their" com- ments to the said project and various appraising agencies are checking the design of gates from the structural as- pect. .But no final approval has been given. The State of Andhra Pradesh has sent their" com- ments to the said project and various appraising agencies are checking the design of gates from the structural as- pect. .But no final approval has been given. The allegation of State of Andhra Pradesh that Central Government adopted partisan attitude has been de- nied and on the other hand it has been stated that the State of Andhra Pradesh has not been able to prove that by con- structing Almatti Dam the State of Karnataka will be utilising more water than allocated by KWDT. It is in this con- text the Central Government has also averred that the State of Andhra Pradesh is constructing Telugu Ganga Project which is an unapproved Project. So far as the allegation in the plaint that State of Andhra Pradesh had not been consulted before the Department of En- vironment and Forest cleared the Up- per Krishna Project, it has been averred that there is no obligation on the part of Department of Environment and Forest, Government of India to obtain the views of State of Andhra Pradesh while clear- ing of the Upper Krishna Project of State of Karnataka. According to the Central Government the Award of the Tribunal is binding on the parties and the plaintiff has not been able to show any violation of the decision of the Tribunal. (149) ON behalf of Ministry of Power who is Defendant No. 2 © a separate writ- ten statement has been filed giving re- ply to the averments made in paragraphs 56 and 57 of the plaint and it has been indicated that the expression "In Princi- ple" clearance given by the Central Elec- tricity Authority to Upper Krishna Project at Almatti does not tantamount to sanc- tion of the project by the competent au- thority. According to the said defendant while appraising various proposals for power project received from the States due care is taken by the Ministry of Power for proper evaluation. (150) THE State OF MAHARASTRA Defend- ant No.3 filed a written statement fully supporting the stand taken by the State of Karnataka and it has been averred in the written statement that the com- plaint of State of A.P. proceeds on cer- tain assumptions which are not cor- rect. (150) THE State OF MAHARASTRA Defend- ant No.3 filed a written statement fully supporting the stand taken by the State of Karnataka and it has been averred in the written statement that the com- plaint of State of A.P. proceeds on cer- tain assumptions which are not cor- rect. With regard to the main question, namely, whether there was enbloc al- location or project wise allocation the defendant State OF MAHARASTRA cat- egorically avers that the Tribunal equi- tably allocated the waters of the river Krishna by allocating the quantities enbloc or in mass quantities. Though it has discussed individual projects of each State only for the limited purpose of assessing the needs of each State in accordance with the principles of equitable distribution. It has further been stated in the said written state- ment that apart from the restrictions expressly stated in the final order of the Tribunal which has been notified by the Central Government no other restric- tions have been imposed on the method of use by each State within the allo- cated share of the State concerned and Tribunal has not put any restriction on the storage by each State and accord- ing to Clause VII of the final order the storage of water by each State would not be considered as use of water by the State concerned. In the very writ- ten statement several paragraphs of the Report of the Tribunal have been quoted to indicate that the ultimate allocation was enbloc and not project wise and fur- ther there has been no restriction or re- straint placed by the Tribunal with re- gard to storage, size and height of dams in the Krishna basin. The State has also referred to the subsequent conduct, that after the submission of original report and the decision of the Tribunal the State of Andhra Pradesh infact filed clarification note 9 and 10 on 7.5.1975 and 8.5.1975 raising objec- tion to the storage but ultimately with- drew those notes and did not want any clarification on the subject of storage which fortifies stand of the State OF MAHARASTRA that there is no restric- tion on any State in respect of storage of water within the Krishna basin so long as it does not exceed the enbloc allocation given by the Tribunal. Ac- cording to this defendant the relief sought for in the plaint would tanta- mount to a complete re-writing of the decision of the Tribunal which would be outside the scope of a suit under Arti- cle 131 of the Constitution. After refut- ing the stand taken by the State of Andhra Pradesh in the plaint in para- graph 16 of the written statement the State OF MAHARASTRA submitted , "that the plaintiff does not deserve to be granted any of the prayers prayed for in this para and the Suit should be dis- missed with costs". Having filed the aforesaid written statement on 7th July, 1997 fully supporting the stand taken by the State of Karnataka and seeking re- lief of the dismissal of the suit filed by the State of Andhra Pradesh an addi- tional written statement was filed by the said State on 9th April, 1999 giving a clear go bye to the earlier written state- ment and taking a new stand in relation to the alleged construction of Almatti Dam with FRL RL 524.56 m. by the State of Karnataka. In this additional written statement it has been averred that by raising the dam height at Almatti, there is likelihood of enormous dam- age to private and public properties and works and structures including archeo- logical structures and pilgrimage places in the State OF MAHARASTRA. There would also be disruption of communi- cations, enhanced distress and dam- ages during floods each year due to sedimentation. It has been further averred that the details of the magni- tude, duration and extent of submer- gence were not clear to the State OF MAHARASTRA as the said submergence has not been discussed by the Tribu- nal itself but on getting subsequent documents from the State of Karnataka and on ascertaining the effect of the pro- posed Almatti Dam at 524.256 m it ap- pears that there would be large scale submergence of area in the State OF MAHARASTRA and no State should be allowed to have its project which will have deleterious and adverse effect on the other State. It is in this connection in the additional written statement it has been further averred that the said State of Karnataka has not obtained the rel- evant clearance from different environ- ment authorities and forest authorities and even the Central Water Commis- sion has not given the clearance and, therefore, the State of Karnataka should be injunCTEd from raising the dam height from 519.00 m. to 524.256 m. un- til and unless the actual area likely to be submerged is made known after due survey. In the written statement the ad- verse effect of submergence have been indicated in different paragraphs and ultimately it has been prayed that the prayer h, I & j sought for by the plaintiff so far as it relates to Almatti Dam under UKP should be allowed, namely, the State of Karnataka should be injunCTEd. Though the State OF MAHARASTRA filed the aforesaid addi- tional written statement taking the stand totally contrary to the stand taken earlier but no order had been passed on the same and it is only when the hearing of this suit began the COURt passed an order that without prejudice to the contention of the State of Karnataka the said additional written statement be taken into consideration on the basis of which an additional is- sue is also required to be framed. (151) ON the pleadings of the parties, 22 issues were framed which are extraCTEd hereinbelow:- 1. Whether the State of Karnataka has violated the binding decisions dated 24.12.1973 and 27.05.1976 rendered by the KWDT by executing the projects mentioned in para 66, 68n & 69 of the Plaint? (A.P./KAR) 2. Has this Hon'ble COURt jurisdiction to entertain and try this suit? (MAN.) 3. Does the Plaintiff prove that the allo- cation of Krishna Waters by the KWDT in its Final Order are specific for projects and not enbloc as contended by the De- fendant? (MAH.) 4. Does the Plaintiff prove that the upper States are not entitled to construct project without reference to and consent of the other States? (MAH.) 6. Is not the Union Government duty bound to consult all the riparian States before according any approval/sanction/ clearance in principle clearances to any schemes, projects proposed/under- taken, by any of the riparian States on the Inter-State river Krishna? (A.P.) 7. (MAH.) 6. Is not the Union Government duty bound to consult all the riparian States before according any approval/sanction/ clearance in principle clearances to any schemes, projects proposed/under- taken, by any of the riparian States on the Inter-State river Krishna? (A.P.) 7. Whether the sanctions and the ap- provals granted by the 2nd Defendant to the State of Karnataka for the projects referred to in Issue I, without the prior concurrence of State of Andhra Pradesh are valid and binding upon the Plaintiff?(A.P.) 8. Whether sanctions and the approvals granted by the 2nd defendant are liable to be reviewed, reconsidered afresh, af- ter obtaining the views thereon of the other riparian States?(A.P.). 9. (a) Whether the construction of the Almatti Dam with a FRL of 524.256 m to- gether with all other projects executed, in progress and contemplated by Karnataka would enable it to utilise more water than allocated by the Tribunal? (A.P.) 5. Whether the Plaintiff is entitled to a declaration that all the projects executed and/or which are in the process of ex- ecution by the State of Karnataka, and not in conformity with or in conflict with the Decisions of the KWDT are illegal and unauthorised? (A.P.) (b) Whether Karnataka could be permit- ted to proceed with construction of such a dam without the consent of other riparian States, and without the approval of the Central Government? (A.P.) 10. Whether the Plaintiff proves that the reservoir and irrigation canals as alleged in paragraph 68 of the Plaint are over- sized. If so, are they contrary to the De- cision of the Tribunal? (A.P.) 11 .Whether the Plaintiff State of andhra Pradesh proves specific allocation/utili- sation for UKP and canals as alleged? (A.P.) 12. Whether State of Karnataka is enti- tled to provide for any irrigation under Almatti canals and other new projects, when no allocation is made under the decisions of the KWDT? (A.P.) 13. Whether the Defendant State of Karnataka is entitled unilaterally to real- locate/readjust the allocation/utilisation under the UKP or any other project? Is concurrence of other riparian States nec- essary? (A.P.) 14. Whether the Union of India can per- mit and/or is justified in permitting the State of Karnataka to proceed with vari- ous projects which are in violation of the decisions rendered by KWDT? (A.P.) 15. Is concurrence of other riparian States nec- essary? (A.P.) 14. Whether the Union of India can per- mit and/or is justified in permitting the State of Karnataka to proceed with vari- ous projects which are in violation of the decisions rendered by KWDT? (A.P.) 15. Whether Upper Krishna Stage-ll Multipurpose Project could be ex- ecuted without the environmental clear- ance under the Environment (Protec- tion) Act, 1986 and the Notification is- sued by the Central Government in 1994 in exercise of its power under the said Act and the Rules made thereun- der which mandatorily requires various analysis including dam break analysis? (A.P.) 16. Whether the acts of the State of Karnataka adversely effect or would ad- versely effect the State of Andhra Pradesh, and if so, with what consequences?(KAR) 17. Whether Hippargi was always part of the UKP and on that basis the KWDT awarded 5 TMC utilisation thereunder ?(A.P.) 18. Whether the utilisation of water un- der Chikkapada Salagi, Heggur and 5 other barrages is not 33 TMC as as- sessed by the Plaintiff State?(A.P.) 19. Whether the cumulative utilisations in the K2 sub-basin is 173 TMC as claimed by the State of Karnataka or 428.75 TMC as assessed by the Plain- tiff State?(A.P.) 20. Whether the State of Karnataka ha? Violated the KWDT award by proceeding with several new projects in the sub-ba- sin such as K-6, K-8 and K-9 in respect of which restrictions in quantum of utili- sation have been imposed in the final decision of the Tribunal? (A.P.) 21. Whether utilisation under Almatti would be of the order of 91 TMC as claimed in para 66(iii) of the plaint?(A.P.) 22. (A.P.) 21. Whether utilisation under Almatti would be of the order of 91 TMC as claimed in para 66(iii) of the plaint?(A.P.) 22. To what reliefs if any, the plaintiff is entitled to?(A. P.) The additional issue framed as 9©, be- cause of the additional written statement filed on behalf of defendant no.3 is to the effect, "Whether Karnataka can be per- mitted to raise the storage level at Almatti dam, above RL 509.16 meters in view of the likely submergence of territo- ries in MAHARASTRA." Before we take up the different issues framed by the COURt and answer the same in the light of the contentions raised as well as with reference to the documents filed in support of the same it would be appropriate for us to notice the order of this COURt dated 30th September, 1997 and its effect on the ultimate decision of the suit itself (152) ON 30th of September, 1997, this COURt passed the following Order: "Sh. F.S. Nariman, learned Senior coun- sel for the State of Karnataka-defendant no. 1 and Sh. T.R. Andhyarujina, learned Solicitor General appearing for the State OF MAHARASTRA- defendant No. 3 referred to the prayer (a) (at page 72 of the Pa- per book) and submits that both these States namely, Karnataka and MAHARASTRA accept this claim of the plaint of the State of Andhra Pradesh and agree to the grant of relief in the suit in terms of prayer in clause (a) as under: "(a) declare that the report/decision dated 24,12.1973 and the further report/ decision dated 27.5.1976 of the Krishna Waters Dispute Tribunal (KWDT) in their entirety are binding upon the three riparian States OF MAHARASTRA, Karnataka and Andhra Pradesh and also the Union of India. (153) IN other words, there is no contro- versy in the Suit between the Plaintiff and Defendants 1 and 3 i.e. Andhra Pradesh, Karnataka and MAHARASTRA and that the report/decision dated 24.12.1973 and the further report/decision dated 27.5.1976 of the Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal (KWDT) in their entirety are binding upon the three riparian States OF MAHARASTRA, Karnataka and Andhra Pradesh. There is thus no controversy between the three riparian States to this extent. The learned Attorney General appearing for the Union of India submits that he is unable to make any statement today in this behalf as he has to seek instructions in the matter. There is thus no controversy between the three riparian States to this extent. The learned Attorney General appearing for the Union of India submits that he is unable to make any statement today in this behalf as he has to seek instructions in the matter. This statement made by the learned counsel for the three riparian States is placed on record to indicate that a partial decree to this extent on the basis of ad- mission of the defendants (1 and 3, Karnataka and MAHARASTRA) can be passed and therefore, there is no need to frame any issue to cover this aspect of the Suit- In COURse of hearing of the suit arguments had been advanced on behalf of the State of Karnataka by Mr. Nariman that the aforesaid partial decree in terms of prayer 'a' of OS No. 2 of 1997 unequivocally in- dicates that the entire report i.e. 24.12.1973 and the further report dated 27.5.1976 in entirety must be held to be binding upon three riparian States, and that being the position, there is no logic on the part of the State of Andhra Pradesh to resist the prayer of Plaintiff No. 1 in OS No. 1 of 1997 to make Scheme 'B' binding on parties which Scheme obviously form a part of the re- port and the further report. Mr. Ganguli, learned senior counsel appearing for the State of Andhra Pradesh on the other hand contended, that a prayer made by the plaintiff has to be understood in the context of the averments made in the plaint itself and not bereft of the same. According to Mr. Ganguli prayer 'a' in the case in hand, if read in the light of the averments made in the plaint itself it would only mean that the plaintiff State having averred in the plaint that the Tri- bunal had made project wise allocation which should be read into the final deci- sion of the Tribunal which has been noti- fied in the Official Gazette by the Gov- ernment of India and, therefore, the State of Karnataka is not entitled to raise the height of the Dam at Almatti to 524.256 meters whereby it would be able to store more than 200 TMC of water with the uti- lisation capacity of about 400 TMC. It is in this context Mr. It is in this context Mr. Ganguli placed before us paragraphs 3.1, 3.2 and 3.3 of the written statement to indicate to us as to how the said defendant understood the prayer 'a' in the plaint. Mr. Ganguli ulti- mately urged that the final order of the Tribunal can be equated with a decree in a civil suit and decree must be con- sistent with the judgment and, therefore, applying the said analogy the final order requires to be read in the light of the ad- judication made by the Tribunal in the fi- nal report. The learned counsel placed reliance on the following decisions in sup- port of the aforesaid contentions:- (i) Kalikrishna Tagore v. The Secre- tary of State LR 15 Indian Appeals 186 at 192.3 (ii) Law Report 25 Indian Appeals at 107- 08 (iii) 1913 Vol. 25 Madras Law Journal 24. (154) AT the outset we are unable to ac- cept the contention of Mr. Ganguli that the decision of the Tribunal which is ul- timately notified under Section 6 of the Act can be held to be a decree of a suit and the report being the judgment and, therefore, the decided case laws on which reliance has been placed has no application at all. The inter-State Water Disputes Act having been framed by the Parliament under Article 262 of the Con- stitution is a complete Act .by itself and the nature and charaCTEr of a decision made thereunder has to be understood in the light of the provisions of the very Act itself. A dispute or difference be- tween two or more State Governments having arisen which is a water dispute under Section 2© of the Act and com- plaint to that effect being made to the Union Government under Section 3 of the said Act the Central Government constitutes a Water Disputes Tribunal for the adjudication of the dispute in ques- tion, once it forms the opinion that the dispute cannot be settled by negotia- tions. The Tribunal thus constituted, is required to investigate the matters re- ferred to it and then forward to the Cen- tral Government a report setting out the facts as found by him and giving its de- cision on it as provided under Sub-sec- tion (2) of Section 5 of the Act. The Tribunal thus constituted, is required to investigate the matters re- ferred to it and then forward to the Cen- tral Government a report setting out the facts as found by him and giving its de- cision on it as provided under Sub-sec- tion (2) of Section 5 of the Act. On con- sideration of such decision of the Tribu- nal if the Central Government or any State Government is of the opinion that the decision in question requires expla- nation or that guidance is needed upon any point not originally referred to the Tri- bunal then within three monTHS from the date of the decision, reference can be made to the Tribunal for further consider- ation and the said Tribunal then forwards to the Central Government a further re- port giving such explanation or guidance as it deems fit. Thereby the original de- cision of the Tribunal is modified to the extent indicated in the further decision as provided under Section 5(3) of the Act. Under Section 6 of the Act the Cen- tral Government is duty bound to pub- lish the decision of the Tribunal in the Official Gazette where after the said de- cision becomes final and binding on the parties to the dispute and has to be given effect to, by them. The language of the provisions of Section 6 is clear and un- ambiguous and unequivocally indicates that it is only the decision of the Tribunal which is required to be published in the Official Gazette and on such publication that decision becomes final and binding on the parties. It is not required that the report containing the arguments or ba- sis for the ultimate decision is also required to be notified so as to make that binding on the parties. This being the position, it is difficult to appreciate the contention of Mr. Ganguli that the deci- sion of the Tribunal as notified, is in fact a decree of a civil suit and that decree has to be understood in the light of the judgment of the suit. We accordingly are not persuaded to accept the sub- mission of Mr. Ganguli on this point but, at the same time we cannot accept the argument of Mr. We accordingly are not persuaded to accept the sub- mission of Mr. Ganguli on this point but, at the same time we cannot accept the argument of Mr. Nariman that the order of this COURt dated 30th September, 1997 passed in the suit in terms of prayer 'a' must be held to mean that a decree is to be drawn up in OS 2 of 1997 making the entire report and the further report binding on the parties. When a prayer is made in the plaint the said prayer has to be understood in the light of the assertion of facts on which the prayer has been made. The defendant State of Karnataka understood the prayer on that basis as would appear from the averments made in the written state- ment of defendant no. 1 in paragraphs 3.1,3.2 and 3.3. The aforesaid prayer had been made for the relief that notwith- standing enbloc allocation made in the final order of the Tribunal which is the decision of the Tribunal but the very basis to arrive at that decision being the project wise allocation contained in the report the said project wise allocation must be read into the enbloc allocation and, therefore, there must be restriction on the part of the State of Karnataka not to use more water in Upper Krishna Project than the allocated quantity of 160 TMC. Thus read the order of this COURt dated 30th September, 1997, cannot be construed to mean that a decree has to be passed making the entire report as well as the further report of the Tribunal binding on the parties. So far as the question whether allocation made enbloc or project wise the same has been answered while discussing issues nos. 1, 3 and 5 and in this view of the matter the earlier order dated 30th Sep- tember, 1997 is of no consequence in disposing of the suit in question. ISSUE Nos. 1, 3 and 5: (155) THOUGH, there are as many as 22 issues, which have been framed and necessarily to be answered in the suit, but in COURse of arguments advanced by Mr. Ganguli, the learned senior counsel, appearing for the State of Andhra Pradesh, the entire emphasis was on the height of Almatti Dam Stage-ll at 524.256 meters, as proposed by the State of Karnataka and as it appears from various project reports. Ganguli, the learned senior counsel, appearing for the State of Andhra Pradesh, the entire emphasis was on the height of Almatti Dam Stage-ll at 524.256 meters, as proposed by the State of Karnataka and as it appears from various project reports. In view of the arguments advanced by the coun- sel for the parties, these three issues essentially form the bone of contention. It is necessary to be stated that too many issues have been framed by the three different States and COURt has also per- mitted such issues to be struck and most of the issues over-lap one another and in fact have no bearing in relation to the prayer made by the plaintiff. But in- stead of re-framing the issues, argu- ments having been advanced by the counsel for the parties, we would deal with each of them, but with specific em- phasis on the vital issues. So far as the three issues with which we are con- cerned at the moment, when read with the paragraphs of the plaint, dealing with the same, it appears that the plaintiff Andhra Pradesh has made out a case in the plaint that under Scheme "A" which is the decision of the Tribunal and which has been notified by the Central Govern- ment under Section 6 of the Inter-State Water Disputes Act, though there has been allocation of water enbloc but on going through the report itself and the very basis on which the mass allocation has been quantified, it would indicate that project-wise allocation must be read into the so-called mass allocation. This be- ing the position, in Upper Krishna Project, the Tribunal having allocated only 160 TMC of water, construction of Almatti Dam to a height of 524.256 me- ters itself constitutes an infraction of the decision of the Tribunal, and, therefore, the COURt should injunct the State of Karnataka from constructing a dam at Almatti up to the height of 524.256 me- ters. The stand of the State of Karnataka in the written statement filed as well as the stand of Union Government and State OF MAHARASTRA in its original written statement filed however is that, there has been an enbloc allocation by the Tribunal and consequently, there has been no fetter on any State to utilise water up to a limited quantity in any of its projects, except those mentioned in the order of the Tribunal itself and that being the position, the plaintiff would not be entitled to an order of injunction in relation to the construction of Almatti Dam to a height of 524.256 meters. Before we focus our attention to the evi- dence on record in answering these three issues, in the light of arguments advanced by the counsel for the parties, it must be borne in mind that injunction being a discretionary remedy, a COURt may not grant an order of injunction, even if all the three necessary ingredi- ents are established and those ingre- dients are prima facie case of infraction of legal rights, such infraction causes ir- reparable loss and injury to the plaintiff and the injury is of such nature that it cannot be compensated by way of dam- ages. In the case in hand, when the plaintiff has prayed for an order of man- datory injunction to injunct the State of Karnataka from constructing the dam at Almatti to a height of 524.256 meters and makes out a case of infringement of legal rights of the State of Andhra Pradesh, flowing from the decision of the' Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal, which decision has become final and binding on being notified by the Union Govern- ment under Section 6, what is required to be established is that in fact in the said decision of the Tribunal, there has been a project-wise allocation in respect of Upper Krishna Project and if this is es- tablished, then the further fact required to be established is whether by con- struction of Almatti Dam up to a height of 524.256 meters, there has been any infraction of the said decision of the Tri- bunal which has caused irreparable in- jury and damage to the lower riparian State of Andhra Pradesh and the said damage cannot be compensated by way of damages. Since the plaintiff-State has to establish all the aforesaid require- ments, so that an order of injunction, as prayed for, can be granted, let us exam- ine the very first ingredient namely whether under the decision of the Tribu- nal, there has at all been a project-wise allocation as contended by Mr. Ganguli, appearing for the State of Andhra Pradesh or the allocation was enbloc, as contended by Mr. Nariman, appear- ing for the State of Karnataka and reit- erated by Mr. Salve, the learned Solici- tor General and Mr. Andhyarujina, ap- pearing for the State OF MAHARASTRA. While deciding the Original Suit No. 1 of 1997, filed by the State of Karnataka, negativing the contention of the said State to the effect that Scheme "B" evolved by the Tribunal, whether forms a decision of the Tribunal or not, we have already recorded the finding that Scheme "B" cannot be held to be the decision of the Tribunal inasmuch as it is only that order of the Tribunal which conclusively decides the dispute re- ferred to, and is capable of being imple- mented on its own, can be held to be a decision of the Tribunal under Section 5(2) of the Act. In fact the plaintiff in the present suit also bases its case on the Scheme "A" and contends that there has been an infraction of the said Scheme "A" by the defendant-State of Karnataka. If we examine the Final Order of the Tri- bunal contained in Chapter XVI of the Original Report Exhibit PK1 as well as the modified order after answering the application for clarifications made by dif- ferent States, in the Further Report of December, 1976 in Chapter VII of Exh. PK2, which has been notified by the Central Government under Section 6 of the Act in the Gazette of India dated 31st of May, 1976, it is crystal clear that the allocation made, has been enbloc and not project-wise and, therefore, there is no fetter on any of the States in utilising water in any project to a limited extent, excepting those contained in Clause (IX) of the decision. The allocation made to the three States OF MAHARASTRA, Karnataka and Andhra Pradesh for their beneficial use has been provided in Clause (V) and subject to such condi- tions and restrictions as are mentioned in the subsequent clauses. The allocation made to the three States OF MAHARASTRA, Karnataka and Andhra Pradesh for their beneficial use has been provided in Clause (V) and subject to such condi- tions and restrictions as are mentioned in the subsequent clauses. Clause (V) of the decision which in fact makes the allocation, may be quoted herein below in extenso: "Clause V (A) The State OF MAHARASTRA shall not use in any water year more than the quantity of water of the river Krishna specified hereunder:- (i) as from the water year commencing on the 1st June next after the date of the publication of the decision of the Tribu- nal in the Official Gazette upto the water year 1982-83 560 TMC. (ii) as from the water year 1983-84 up to the water year 1989-90 560 TMC plus a quantity of water equivalent to 10 per cent of the excess of the average of the annual utilisations for irrigation in the Krishna river basin during the water years 1975-76, 1976-77 and 1977-78 from its own projects using 3 TMC or more an- nually over the utilisations for such irri- gation in the water year 1968-69 from such projects. (iii) as from the water year 1990-91 upto the water year 1997-98 560 TMC plus a quantity of water equivalent to 10 per cent of the excess of the average of the annual utilisations for irrigation in the Krishna river basin during the water years 1982-83, 1983-84 and 1984-85 from its own projects using 3 TMC or more an- nually over the utilisations for such irri- gation in the water year 1968-69 from such projects. (iv) as from the water year 1998-99 on- wards 560 TMC plus a quantity of water equivalent to 10 per cent of the excess of the average of the annual utilisations for irrigation in the Krishna river basin during the water years 1990-91, 1991-92 and 1992-93 from its own projects using 3 TMC or more an- nually over the utilisations for such irri- gation in the water year 1968-69 from such projects. (B) The State of Karnataka shall not use in any water year more than the quan- tity of water of the river Krishna speci- fied hereunder;- (i) as from the water year commencing on the 1st June next after the date of the publication of the decision of the Tribu- nal in the Official Gazette up to the wa- ter year 1982-83 700 TMCi J (n) as from the water year 1983-84 up tOT the water year 1989-90 700TMCplus| a quantity of water equivalent to 10 per | cent of the excess of the average of the annual utilisations for irrigation in the Krishna river basin during the water years 1975-76, 1976-77 and 1977-78 from its own projects using 3 TMC or more an- nually over the utilisations for such irri- gation in the water year 1968-69 from such projects. (iii) as from the water year 1990-91 upto the water year 1997-98 700 TMC plus a quantity of water equivalent to 10 per cent of the excess of the average of the annual utilisations for irrigation in the Krishna river basin during the water years 1982-83, 1983-84 and 1984-85 from its own projects using 3 TMC or more an- nually over the utilisations for such irri- gation in the water year 1968-69 from such projects. (iv)as from the water year 1998-99 on- wards 700 TMC plus a quantity of water equivalent to 10 per cent of the excess of the average of the annual utilisations for irrigation in the Krishna river basin during the water years 1990-91, 1991-92 and 1992-93 from its own projects using 3 TMC or more an- nually over the utilisations for such irri- gation in the water year 1968-69 from such projects. (C) The State of andhra Pradesh will be at liberty to use in any water year the remaining water that may be flowing in the river Krishna but thereby it shall not acquire any right whatsoever to use in any water year nor be deemed to have been allocated in any water year water of the river Krishna in excess of the quan- tity specified hereunder:- (i) as from the water year commencing on the 1st June next after the date of the publication of the decision of the Tribu- nal in the Official Gazette up to the wa- ter year 1982-83. 800TMC (ii) as from the water year 1983-84 up to the water year 1989-90 800 TMC plus a quantity of water equivalent to 10 per cent of the excess of the average of the annual utilisations for irrigation in the Krishna river basin during the water years 1990-91, 1991-92 and 1992-93 from its own projects using 3 TMC or more an- nually over the utilisations for such irri- gation in the water year 1968-69 from such projects. (iii) as from the water year 1990-91 up to the water year 1997-98 800 TMC plus a quantity of water equivalent to 10, per cent of the excess of the average of the annual utilisations for irrigation in the Krishna river basin during the water years 1982-83, 1983-84 and 1984-85 from its own projects using 3 TMC or more an- nually over the utilisations for such irri- gation in the water year 1968-69 from such projects. (iv) as from the water year 1998-99 on- wards 800 TMC plus a quantity of water equivalent to 10 per cent of the excess of the average of the annual utilisations for irrigation in the Krishna river basin during the water years 1990-91, 1991-92 and 1992-93 from its own projects using 3 TMC or more an- nually over the utilisations for such irri- gation in the water year 1968-69 from such projects. (D) For the limited purpose of this Clause, it is declared that :- the utilisations for irrigation in the Krishna river basin in the water year 1968-69 from projects using 3 TMC or more annually were as follows:- From projects of the State OF MAHARASTRA- 61.45 TMC From projects of the State of Karnataka- 176.05 TMC From projects of the State of Andhra Pradesh-\ 170.00 TMC (ii) annual utilisations for irrigation in the Krishna river basin in each water year after this Order comes into operation from the project of any State using 3 TMC or more annually shall be computed on the basis of the records prepared and maintained by that State under Clause XIII. (iii) evaporation losses from reservoirs of projects using 3 TMC or more annually shall be excluded in computing the 10 per cent figure of the average annual utilisations mentioned in Sub-clauses A(ii), A(iii), A(iv), B(ii), B(iii), B(iv), C(ii), C(iii) and C(iv) of this clause." (156) THE aforesaid Clause V, no doubt is in a negative form, prohibiting the State OF MAHARASTRA and State of Karnataka from using in any water year more than the water that has been allotted in their favour respectively but by no stretch of imagination, any restriction can be said to have been put on any of the States in the aforesaid Clause V, so long as they do not use more than the quantity allot- ted in their favour in any water year. In other words under Clause V of the deci- sion, the State OF MAHARASTRA is entitled to use up to 560 TMC in any water year and the State of Karnataka similarly is entitled to use up to 700 TMC in any wa- ter year. The language used by the Tri- bunal in formulating Clause V of the de- cision is clear and unambiguous and as such it is difficult for the COURt to read into it any restrictions as submitted by the learned senior counsel, appearing for the State of Andhra Pradesh. We may mention at this stage, that the original report and the decision of 1973 was marked as Exhibit PK-1 in OS 1/97 and the further report and the decision of 1976 was marked as Exhibit PK-2 in OS 1/97, and those two documents having been referred to by the parties in COURse of ar- guments as PK-1 and PK-2. We have also in judgment referred as PK-1 and PK-2 which were exhibited as such in OS 1/97. (157) MR. Ganguli, the learned senior counsel however contended before us that before the Tribunal, each of the three riparian States claimed water for their various projects, covering utilisation to the order of 4269.33 TMC, as is appar- ent from Exhibit PKI itself and then at a subsequent stage of the proceedings before the Tribunal, all the party States agreed that 75 dependable flow up to Vijayawada in the river Krishna is 2060 TMC, which is, therefore much less than the total demand made by each of the States, amounting to 4269.33 TMC. The learned counsel further urged that all the three States entered into an agree- ment on 7.5.1971, indicating therein that 20 of the projects in MAHARASTRA, 13 projects in Karnataka and 17 projects in Andhra Pradesh should be proteCTEd and the parties also agreed to the specified quantity of utilisation of water in respect of each of the projects which could be treated as proteCTEd utilisation and total of such proteCTEd utilisation came to 751.20 TMC, as is apparent from the Original Report Exhibit PKI. It is the fur- ther contention that since in respect of one project in MAHARASTRA, five projects in Karnataka and five projects in Andhra Pradesh, the parties could not agree to the quantity of utilisation which should be proteCTEd and all the States invited the Tribunal to decide the extent of utili- sation to be proteCTEd in respect of those 11 projects and the Tribunal adjudicated the additional utilisation to the extent of 714.91 TMC in respect of 9 out of the 11 projects and thus the total proteCTEd uti- lisation out of the dependable flow at 75 dependability worked out at 1693.36 TMC, which of COURse includes 227.25 TMC on minor irrigations. Having thus arrived at the figure of 1693.36 TMC for proteCTEd utilisation, the balance quan- tity out of the dependable flow to the ex- tent of 366.64 TMC was further distrib- uted by the Tribunal to the extent of 50.84 TMC to Andhra Pradesh for Srisailem reservoir and Jurala Project. Out of the remaining 315.80 TMC, tak- ing into consideration all germane fac- tors, the Tribunal allocated 125.35 TMC to MAHARASTRA and 190.45 TMC to Karnataka. Mr. Ganguli contends that while making these allocations, so far as Upper Krishna Project in the State of Karnataka is concerned, the Tribunal merely permitted utilisation of only 52 TMC in the Right Bank Canal of Narayanpur in addition to the proteCTEd utilisation of 103 TMC already granted in respect of the Left Bank Canal under the Narayanpur Canal and, therefore, the to- tal worked out at 155 TMC and there had been no allocation made by the Tribunal so far as Almatti Dam is concerned. At a later stage when in its Further Report Exhibit PK2, the Tribunal allocated addi- tional 5 TMC for utilisation under Hippargi Project, the conclusion is irresistible that in Upper Krishna Projects in Hippargi, Almatti and Narayanpur, a total quantity of 160 TMC was allocated and this must be read into the Final Order in Clause (V), though not specifically mentioned therein. It is in this connection, Mr. Ganguli took us through the different pages of Exhibit PKI as well as the plaint and the written statement of the State of Karnataka. But as has been stated earlier, if the decision of the Tribunal is its Final Order, as noti- fied by the Central Government in exer- cise of power under Section 6 of the Act, we really fail to understand, how the aforesaid limitations can be read into the said decision, particularly, when Clause (V) of the decision is clear and there is no ambiguity in the same. It is undoubt- edly true that while considering the ques- tion of extent of allocation of water in fa- vour of the three riparian States out of 2060 TMC of water at 75 dependability, the Tribunal did take into account the different projects already undertaken by different States but consideration of those projects is only for the purpose of arriv- ing at the quantity of water to be allocated and not for making any project-wise allo- cation, as contended by Mr. Ganguli. In Exhibit PKI itself, the Tribunal records to the following effect: "Our examination of the project reports and other relevant documents has a very limited purpose and it is to determine what are the reasonable needs of the two States so that an equitable way may be found out for distributing the remain- ing water between the two States. It is of COURse, always to be borne in mind that the allocation of waters though based on consideration of certain projects being found to be worth consid- eration are not on that account to be re- striCTEd and confined to those projects alone. It is of COURse, always to be borne in mind that the allocation of waters though based on consideration of certain projects being found to be worth consid- eration are not on that account to be re- striCTEd and confined to those projects alone. Indeed the States (and this ap- plies to all the States) would be entitled to use the waters for irrigation in such manner as 'hey find proper subject al- ways to the restrictions and conditions which are placed on them." (158) THIS unequivocally indicates the pur- pose for which the projects of different States were being examined and it is ex- plicitly made clear that the States should be entitled to use the waters for irrigation in such manner as they find proper, sub- ject, always to the restrictions and condi- tions which are placed on them. Unless, therefore, any restriction or conditions in the decision of the Tribunal can be found out for utilisation of a specific quantity of water out of the total allocated share in the Upper Krishna Project, there cannot be any fetter on the part of the State of Karnataka to make such user. In the de- cision of the Tribunal, there does not ap- pear to be an iota of restrictions or condi- tions, which even can be inferred and, therefore, the submission of Mr. Ganguli, appearing for the State of andhra Pradesh on this score cannot be accepted. (159) IN the report of the Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal Exhibit PK-1 for the pur- pose of allocation of water in the Krishna basin the Tribunal has examined each project of each of the three States and then recorded its conclusion as to whether the project is worth considera- tion. The Tribunal expressed the mean- ing of the expression "worth considera- tion" by saying that the expression is used in the sense that it means the re- quirements of an area in the State con- cerned. It would be appropriate at this stage to quote the exact findings of the Tribunal in this regard:- "In saying that the project is worth con- sideration we do not wish to be under- stood to say that the project, if feasible, should be adopted. Likewise when we say that the project is not worth consid- eration we do not say that no water should ever be allowed for it. Likewise when we say that the project is not worth consid- eration we do not say that no water should ever be allowed for it. If at some future date more water becomes avail- able it is possible that more projects may come upto the worth consideration stand- ard. In assessing whether the project is worth consideration or not we have taken into account the physical charaCTEristics of the area like rainfall etc., the catch- ment area, the commanded area, the ayacut of the project, the fact whether the project is meant for irrigating the scarcity area or not and such other facts. In other words we determine on prag- matic considerations what needs of the States OF MAHARASTRA and Mysore can be satisfied so that an equitable way may be found out for distributing the bal- ance of the dependable flows between the two States. It should not be taken our observations relating to the projects which we have noted as worth consid- eration are to be accepted in any way as final and binding by the Planning Commission or any other authority." The aforesaid finding fully negatives the contention of Mr. Ganguli, appearing for the State of A.P., that the allocation was project wise which can be read into the final order. Clause IX of the final order has placed restriction on the use of wa- ter in the Krishna basin by the three States. The reasons for putting such re- strictions appears to be that on the main stream there has been only restriction on river Bhima whereas on the side streams there has been restriction in case of tungbhadra and Vedavathi sub- basin. Even in case of sub-basin K-3 there has been restriction on the State OF MAHARASTRA from using more than 7 TMC in any water year from Ghataprabha and the reason for such restriction is that the requirements of the State of Mysore for the projects in that sub-basin may suffer. Similarly restriction has been placed on the State of andhra Pradesh not to use more than 6 TMC from the catchment of the river Koyna, the idea being that the waters of that river would reach the main streams of river Bhima. Similarly restriction has been placed on the State of andhra Pradesh not to use more than 6 TMC from the catchment of the river Koyna, the idea being that the waters of that river would reach the main streams of river Bhima. Even while placing such restriction the Tribunal has placed the upper limit slightly above the total requirements of that State as assessed from the de- mands made which had been either proteCTEd or which have held as worth consideration. The very fact that restric- tions have been put by the Tribunal in several sub-basins and no restriction has been put so far as sub-basin K-2 wherein Upper Krishna Project of the State of Karnataka is being carried on clinches the point raised by the State of Andhra Pradesh and discussed in these three issues, namely, it is not possible to read any restriction for quantity of user of water in Upper Krishna Project by the State of Karnataka and so long as the total user does not exceed mass allocation, it cannot be said that the de- cision of the Tribunal is being violated infringing the rights of the State of Andhra Pradesh which can be prohib- ited by issuing any mandatory injunction. After receiving the copy of the report and the decision of the Tribunal under Exhibit PK-1 the State of Andhra Pradesh filed application for clarification, being clari- fication No.4 under Section 5(3) of the Act, requesting reduction of 1.865 TMC from the Koyna Project of State OF MAHARASTRA. Having filed such applica- tion on 5th March, 1976, the learned Ad- vocate General of the State of Andhra Pradesh did not press the said clarifi- cation No.4 on the ground that the allo- cations are enbloc which is apparent from Exhibit PK-2 dealing with clarifica- tion no.4. Having made an unequivocal statement before the Tribunal itself that the allocations a"e enbloc we fail to un- derstand how the State of Andhra Pradesh has filed the suit making out a case that there has been any project- wise allocation by the Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal. Having made an unequivocal statement before the Tribunal itself that the allocations a"e enbloc we fail to un- derstand how the State of Andhra Pradesh has filed the suit making out a case that there has been any project- wise allocation by the Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal. The aforesaid state- ment of the learned Advocate General made before the Tribunal has not been explained either in the plaint filed by the State nor even in COURse of hearing of the suit, and in our view, the State of Andhra Pradesh also fully understood that the allocations made under Scheme 'A' was enbloc. It further appears from Exhibit PK-2 that the State of Andhra Pradesh did file a clarification no. 5 un- der Section 5(3) of the Act praying that the maximum quantity which could be utilised in K-5 and K-6 sub-basin of the State OF MAHARASTRA and Karnataka should be specified and ultimately on 23rd August, 1974, the learned Advocate General for the said State did not press the clarification as it had no materials on record on which he could substanti- ate it. The very fact that State had not filed any clarification application so far as K-2 sub-basin is concerned, though it did file such application in respect of sub-basin K-5 and K-6 as well as in case of Koyna Krishna Lift Irrigation Scheme unequivocally indicates that the State had no grievance so far as the alloca- tion enbloc made by the Tribunal and not putting any restriction of the user in K-2 sub-basin which consists of the Upper Krishna Project. This in our view, fully clinches the matter and the conclusion is irresistible that under the decision of the Tribunal there has been mass allo- cation and no project-wise allocation as contended by the State of Andhra Pradesh in the suit. In the aforesaid premises, we answer the three issues against the plaintiff and in favour of the defendants and hold that under the de- cision of the Tribunal the allocation of water in river Krishna was enbloc and not project-wise excepting those spe- cific projects mentioned in clauses IX and X of the decision. In the aforesaid premises, we answer the three issues against the plaintiff and in favour of the defendants and hold that under the de- cision of the Tribunal the allocation of water in river Krishna was enbloc and not project-wise excepting those spe- cific projects mentioned in clauses IX and X of the decision. ISSUE No.2 (160) THOUGH this issue has been raised at the behest of the State OF MAHARASTRA but in view of the stand taken by the said State in the additional written statement and the additional issues framed thereon, the learned counsel appearing for the State OF MAHARASTRA did not argue the question of jurisdiction, and on the other hand contended, that the jurisdiction of this COURt in a suit under Article 131 of the Constitution should not be restriCTEd or narrowed down and on the other hand the COURt should be capable of granting all necessary reliefs in adjudicating the dispute raised. That apart on the basis on which the plaintiff State filed the suit and the relief sought for it cannot be said that the suit is not maintainable. We, therefore, answer this issue in favour of the plaintiff. ISSUE NOS. 4, 6, 7 and 8 (161) THESE four issues are inter-linked and have been framed in view of the posi- tive stand taken by the State of andhra Pradesh that in case of an inter State river when any project of one State is considered by the Government of India or any other appropriate authority the other State should also be made aware of and their consent should also be taken. Though this stand had been taken by the plaintiff-State of Andhra Pradesh but all the three defendants re- futed the same. In COURse of hearing of the suit the learned counsel Mr. Ganguli has not placed before us any material or any law which compels the concerned authority to consult all the riparian States before sanctioning a project of one State. In the absence of any legal basis for such stand we are not able to agree with the stand taken by the State of andhra Pradesh that the Central Government was duty bound to take the consent of other States while sanctioning any project of any of the riparian States. In the absence of any legal basis for such stand we are not able to agree with the stand taken by the State of andhra Pradesh that the Central Government was duty bound to take the consent of other States while sanctioning any project of any of the riparian States. That apart, these issues are academic in the context of the Upper Krishna Project of the State of Karnataka and, in particular, the construction of the Almatti Dam. Before the Tribunal the State of Karnataka had submitted the report of Upper Krishna Project of July 1970 which was exhibited before the Tribunal as MYPK-3 and the said document has been marked as Exhibit PAP-42 in the present suit. The salient features of the said project, so far as Almatti Dam height is concerned, was shown as FRL 524.256 m and top of the Dam at 528.786 m. The entire project itself be- ing there before the Tribunal, though the Tribunal did not consider it necessary to discuss the project in particular in view of enbloc allocation made by it, the grievance of the State of Andhra Pradesh that the project was being sur- reptitiously construCTEd is devoid of any substance. We, therefore, answer the aforesaid issues against the plaintiff. ISSUE NO. 9 (a) (b) (162) THIS issue is an important issue in the present suit and the relief sought for essentially depends upon the findings arrived at on this issue. The entire is- sue has to be decided on the basis as to whether there exists any prohibition in the decision of the Tribunal from con- structing Dam at Almatti upto 524.256 meter or from storing any particular quantity of water therein. And if the an- swer is in the negative then the prayer for injuncting the State of Karnataka to raise the Dam height upto 524.256 K;i:> to be rejeCTEd. If the decision of the Tri- bunal is examined from the aforesaid stand point and in view of our conclu- sion that it is that final order which has been notified in the Official Gazette by the Central Government under Section 6 of the Act which is the decision of the Tribunal, we find nothing stated therein which even can be held to be a prohibi- tion or restriction on the power of the State of Karnataka to have the height of Dam upto a particular height. In this view of the matter the plaintiff's prayer to injunct the State of Karnataka from con- structing the Dam height at Almatti upto 524.256 meter cannot be granted. The issue has two sub-issues ; Sub-issue 'a' relates to the height of Almatti Dam ;and sub-issue 'b' being on the ques- tion whether State of Karnataka could be permitted to proceed with the con- struction without the consent of the other riparian States and without the ap- proval of the Central Government? At the outset it may be stated that though the State of Karnataka had produced its project report relating to the construc- tion of the Almatti Dam as per Exhibit PAP-42 but neither the Tribunal had con- sidered the same nor any decision has been arrived at on the question of height of the said Dam. Even after the original report and the decision being made known under Section 5(2) of the Act as per Exhibit PK-1 the State of Andhra Pradesh also did not raise any dispute or clarificatory application objecting to the construction of the Almatti Dam or even to the height of such Dam under Section 5(3) of the Act. In the absence of a decision of the Tribunal on the ques- tion of construction of Dam at Almatti or its height and mass allocation made, being binding upon all parties after be- ing notified under Section 6 of the Act, the grievance relating to the construc- tion of Dam at Almatti or to its height would be a matter of water dispute within the meaning of Section 2(C), inasmuch as it would be a matter concerning use of water of river Krishna and, therefore, cannot be a matter for adjudication in a suit under Article 131 of the Constitution of India. If the complaint of the State of Andhra Pradesh is that by construction of Almatti Dam which is an executive action of the State of Karnataka the State of Andhra Pradesh is likely to be prejudicially affeCTEd then also on such complaint being made to the Union Gov- ernment under Section 3(a) the matter could be referred to a Tribunal for adju- dication. But, we fail to understand how this COURt could entertain the aforesaid lis and decide the same, particularly when the Tribunal has not focussed its attention on the same nor has made any adjudication in respect to the construc- tion of Dam at Almatti or its height. Needless to mention that notwiTHStand- ing the allocation of water in river Krishna being made enbloc no State can con- struct any project for use of water within the State unless such project is ap- proved by the Planning Commission, the Central Water Commission and all other Competent Authorities who might have different roles to play under different specific Statutes. Under the federal structure, like ours, the Central Govern- ment possesses enormous power and authority and no State can on its own carry on the affairs within its territory, particulary when such projects may have adverse effect on other States, particularly in respect of an inter-State river where each riparian State and its inhabitants through which the river flows has its right. From the averments made in the plaint it is crystal clear that the State of andhra Pradesh feels aggrieved by the proposal of the State of Karnataka to have the Dam height at Almatti FRL 524.256 m. In the plaint itself in para- graph 51 the plaintiff has referred to the observation of the Committee to the ef- fect: "For required utilisation of 173 TMC at UKP the height of the Dam at FRL 519.6 m would be adequate." The Committee referred to in the said paragraph is Expert Committee which the four Chief Ministers had appointed, which Committee had examined the pros and cons of the Almatti Dam and the aforesaid views of the Expert Com- mittee was approved by the four Chief Ministers who had been requested by the Prime Minister of India to intervene and find out the efficacy or otherwise of the stand of Karnataka to have Almatti Dam upto the height of FRL 524.256 m. The said Expert Committee had ob- served that the proposal of the State of Karnataka of having Upper Krishna Project with FRL 524.256 m in Stage II at Almatti has not been approved by the Government of India. And it has been further observed that it would be desir- able to proceed with utmost caution in the larger interest of the Nation to wait and watch operation of various Krishna system upstream and down stream be- fore embarking on creating larger stor- age at Almatti Dam than what is needed to suit the prevailing conditions. We are taking note of the observations made by the Expert Committee for the purpose that the plaintiff having failed to estab- lish its case for getting an injuction, would it be appropriate for this COURt to allow the State of Karnataka to have the height of the Dam at Almatti at 524.256 m or it would be obviously in the larger interest of the country and all the States concerned to allow the Dam upto the height of 519.6 m and then leave it open to the States concerned to put forth their grievances before the Tribunal to be appointed by the Central Government for resolving the disputes relating to sharing of water in river Krishna. Read- ing the plaint as a whole it appears to us that the plaintiff State had not made any grievance for having a Dam at Almatti upto a height of FRL 519.6 m and on the other hand, the entire grievance centers round the proposal of the State of Karnataka to have the height at 524.256 m. The report of the Expert Committee referred to in the plaint has been exhib- ited as Exhibit PAP-212 and even that report indicates that the complaint of Andhra Pradesh was that the height of Almatti Dam at FRL 524.256m which has not been approved as yet by the Government of India, would adversely affect the lower riparian State of Andhra Pradesh both in the matter of irrigation as well as generation of power. The said report further reveals that the State of Karnataka is desirous of having the Dam height at FRL 524.256 m so that it can store its share of water available to it under Scheme 'B' when it comes. It is only on fructification of Scheme 'B' the need for a larger storage at Almatti would arise, and therefore, the State is plan- ning ahead to have the height of the Dam at 524.256m. It is only on fructification of Scheme 'B' the need for a larger storage at Almatti would arise, and therefore, the State is plan- ning ahead to have the height of the Dam at 524.256m. According to the report of the said Expert Committee even if the height is allowed not upto 524.256 m it can be allowed later only when the ne- cessity arises and technically it is fea- sible. The report also records that for utilisation of 173 TMC at Almatti and Narainpur the height of the Dam required would be 519 m and not 524.256 m. Thus an expert body appointed by the four Chief Ministers of 4 different States who are not in any way conneCTEd with the inter-State river Krishna taking into account the present need envisaged by the State of Karnataka for utilisation of 173 TMC at Upper Krishna project and taking into account the report submitted by Indian Institute of Science at Bangalore did record a finding that the top of the shutters at Almatti should be fixed at 519.6 m which will provide a storage of about 173TMC which along with storage of 37.8 TMC at Narainpur will be adequate to take care of annual requirement of 173 TMC envisaged un- der Upper Krishna Project. In view of our conclusion in O.S. 1 of 1997 holding that Scheme 'B' is not a decision of the Tribunal, and as such, cannot be imple- mented by a mandatory order from this COURt and the stand of the State of Karnataka before the so called Expert Committee being that they have de- signed the height of Almatti Dam at 524.256 m keeping in view that in the event Scheme 'B' fructifies the State will be able to get the surplus water and store it as a carry over reservoir, as ob- served by the Tribunal itself, not- wiTHStanding the fact that the plaintiff has failed to establish a case on its own for getting the relief of injunction in relation to the construction of Almatti Dam by the State of Karnataka, it would be rea- sonable to hold that though the State can have the Dam at Almatti but the height of the said Dam should not be more than 519.6 m, particularly when the State of Karnataka has not been able to indicate as what is the necessity of hav- ing a height of Dam at 524.256 m when Scheme 'B' is not going to be operated upon immediately. The Upper Krishna Project Stage II, detailed project report of October 1993 which has been exhib- ited in the present case as PAP 45 also indicates that minimum FRL required to get 173 TMC utilisation is found to be 518.7 m. It is in that report it has been indicated that it is because of probable maximum flood of 31000 qmx., the wa- ter level is expeCTEd to go upto 521 m and, therefore, the proposal is to keep the height of the gate to 521 from the crest level with 2 mts. as the gate height. It may be stated at this stage that the height of the Almatti as approved by the Competent Authority is crest level 509 meter and it is in this context to have the height at FRL 524.256 m the State of Karnataka has proposed to have the gate height of 15 meters. as the gate height. It may be stated at this stage that the height of the Almatti as approved by the Competent Authority is crest level 509 meter and it is in this context to have the height at FRL 524.256 m the State of Karnataka has proposed to have the gate height of 15 meters. But as has been indicated earlier, since the entire basis of the State of Karnataka to have the height of the Dam at 524.256 m is contingent upon implementation of Scheme 'B' of the Tribunal thereby enti- tling the State of Karnataka to get its share in excess water and continue the Almatti Dam as a carry over reservoir and since we have decided against the State of Karnataka in O.S. 1 of 1997 which the State had filed for imple- mentation of Scheme 'B', there is abso- lutely no justification for the said State to have the Dam height at Almatti of 524.256 m. We hasten to add that at the same time there cannot be any in- junction or prohibition to the said State of Karnataka for having the Dam height at Almatti upto 519.6m which would be in the interest of all concerned. (163) MR. Ganguli, the learned senior coun- sel, appearing for the State of Andhra Pradesh submitted that the State of Karnataka in the Project Report filed before the Central Water Commission in respect of UKP Stage II, itself indicated that the minimum FRL required at Almatti Reservoir is 519.60 m as per Exhibit PAP 46 In the written statement also, the State of Karnataka also indicated that con- templated height of Dam at 524.256 me- ters is for additional storage, though for the purpose of generation of power which is non-consumptive use and at a height of 524.256 meters, it would utilise 302 TMC, which would be in excess of the enbloc allocation of 734 TMC. Mr. Ganguli also contended that the Upper Krishna Multipurpose Stage II Project Report of 1996 as per Exh. PAP 48, would indicate that the State has planned irri- gation from the water at Almatti which the State would receive under Scheme "B" being implemented. Mr. Ganguli also contended that the Upper Krishna Multipurpose Stage II Project Report of 1996 as per Exh. PAP 48, would indicate that the State has planned irri- gation from the water at Almatti which the State would receive under Scheme "B" being implemented. This being the posi- tion, the very idea of having the dam height at Almatti at FRL 526.256, is even contrary to the mass allocation made in its favour under Scheme "A" and, there- fore, the State should be injunCTEd. We are unable to appreciate this contention of the State of Andhra Pradesh inasmuch as on today the Central Government as well as the appropriate authority have not sanctioned the Upper Krishna Project Stage-ll with the dam height at 524.256 meters. It would not be possible for this COURt to pronounce that there will be a violation of the mass allocation if the State of Karnataka is allowed to have the dam height at Almatti at 524.256 meters, though as stated earlier, according to the State of Karnataka itself for utilisation of 173 TMC, the required dam height is 519.6 meters. It is under these circum- stances, we are of the considered opin- ion that there should not be any bar against the State of Karnataka to con- struct the dam at Almatti upto the height of 519.6 meters and the question of fur- ther raising its height to 524.256 meters should be gone into by the Tribunal, which learned Solicitor General agreed on be- half of Govt. of India to be constituted immediately after the delivery of judgment of these two suits, so as to mitigate the grievance of each of the riparian States on a complaint being made by any of the States. So far as sub-issue (b) is con- cerned, we really do not find any sub- stance in the contention of Mr. Ganguli, the learned counsel appearing for the State of andhra Pradesh. Though it may be fully desirable for all the States to know about the developments of the other States but neither the law on the subject require that a State even for utilisation of its own water resources would take the consent of other riparian States in case of an Inter-State river. Though it may be fully desirable for all the States to know about the developments of the other States but neither the law on the subject require that a State even for utilisation of its own water resources would take the consent of other riparian States in case of an Inter-State river. So far as the sec- ond part of Issue 'b' is concerned, the answer is irresistible that the project of each State has to be approved by the Central Government as well as by other statutory authorities and the Planning Commission, but for which a State should not proceed with the construction of such project. Issues 9(a) and (b) are answered accordingly. ISSUE 9(C) (164) ISSUE 9(C) had been framed while allowing the additional written statement of the State OF MAHARASTRA, which re- lates to the question of submergence. It is to be noted that in the original writ- ten statement filed by the State OF MAHARASTRA, a positive stand had been taken that under the decision of the Tri- bunal, there has been an enbloc alloca- tion of water in favour of each of the three riparian states and as such there was no bar on the State of Karnataka to have a dam at Almatti up to any height and, therefore, it was prayed that the suit filed by the Andhra Pradesh should be re- jeCTEd. In the additional written state- ment that was filed by the State OF MAHARASTRA, it has however been averred that the eventual Submergence of area within the State OF MAHARASTRA had not been known earlier and, there- fore, neither before the Tribunal nor in the original written statement filed, any grievance had been made with regard to the construction of dam at Almatti to a height of 524.256 meters, but since the joint study made by the officers of both the States have brought out that a large area within the State OF MAHARASTRA would get submerged, if Karnataka is permitted to have the dam height at Almatti up to 524.256 meters, the State OF MAHARASTRA has brought these facts to the notice of this COURt in the additional written statement and the additional issue has been framed. In the absence of any relief being sought for in the plaint by the plaintiff against the State OF MAHARASTRA, whether the defendant State OF MAHARASTRA can claim any re- lief against the co-defendant is itself a debatable issue. Mr. Andhyarujina, tne learned senior counsel, appearing for the State OF MAHARASTRA , however con- tended that a suit filed in the Supreme COURt under Article 131 of the Constitu- tion is of a very peculiar nature and the normal principle of a suit filed in an ordinary civil COURt should not apply. Ac- cording to Mr. Andhyarujina, if a dispute between the two states involving the ex- istence or extent of a legal right of one State is being infringed by the action or in action of another State, is brought be- fore this COURt invoking jurisdiction un- der Article 131 of the Constitution, this COURt would be fully justified in entertain- ing and adjudicating the said dispute, no matter whether the dispute is raised as a plaintiff or a defendant in any proceed- ing before the COURt. It is in this context the learned counsel referred to the ob- servations of Bhagwati J and Chandrachud J, in the case of State of Karnataka v. Union of India, [1978(2) SCR 1], wherein Hon'ble Bhagwati J had indicated that the original jurisdic- tion of the Supreme COURt under Article 131 on being invoked by means of filing a suit, the COURt should be careful not to be influenced by the considerations of 'cause of action' which are germane in suit and the scope and ambit of the said jurisdiction must be determined on the plain terms of the Article without being inhibited by any a priori considerations. The learned Judge in the same decision had also indicated that the very object of Article 131 seems to be that there should be a Forum, which could resolve such disputes between two States or the State and the Union and that forum should be the highest COURt in the land so that the final adjudication of disputes could be achieved speedily and expe- ditiously without either party having to embark on a long tortuous and time con- suming journey through a hierarchy of COURts. Mr. Mr. Andhyarujina also relied upon the observations of Bhagwati J in the aforesaid case to the effect: "What Article 131 requires is that the dis- pute must be one which involves a ques- tion on which the existence or extent of legal right depends. The Article does not say that the legal right must be of the plaintiff. It may be of the plain- tiff or of the defendant. What is nec- essary is that the existence or extent of the legal right must be in issue in the dispute between the parties. We cannot construe Article 131 as confined to cases where the dispute relates to the existence or extent of the legal right of the plaintiff, for to do so, would be to read words in the Article which are not there. It seems that because the mode of pro- ceeding provided in Part III of the Su- preme COURt Rules for bringing a dispute before the Supreme COURt under Article 131 is a suit, that we are unconsciously influenced to import the notion of'cause of action', which is germane in a suit, in the interpretation of Article 131 and to read this Article as limited only to cases where some legal right of the plaintiff is infringed and consequently, it has a "cause of action' against the defendant. But it must be remembered that there is no reference to a suit or 'cause of ac- tion' in Article 131 and that Article con- fers jurisdiction on the Supreme COURt with reference to the charaCTEr of the dis- pute which may be brought before it for adjudication. The requirement of'cause of action', which is so necessary in a suit, cannot, therefore, be imported while construing the scope and ambit of Art. 131." (165) THE learned counsel Mr. Andhyarujina, also relied upon the ob- servations of Bhagwati J in the said de- cision to the following effect:- "What has, therefore, to be seen in or- der to determine the applicability of Art. 131 is whether there is any relational legal matter involving a right, liberty, power or immunity qua the parties to the dispute. Andhyarujina, also relied upon the ob- servations of Bhagwati J in the said de- cision to the following effect:- "What has, therefore, to be seen in or- der to determine the applicability of Art. 131 is whether there is any relational legal matter involving a right, liberty, power or immunity qua the parties to the dispute. If there is, the suit would be maintainable, but not oth- erwise." (166) RELIANCE was also placed on the ob- servations of chandrachud J, in the self same case, which may be extraCTEd herein under: - "By the very terms of the Article, there- fore, the sole condition which is required to be satisfied for invoking the original jurisdiction of this COURt is that the dis- pute between the parties referred to in clauses (a) to (c) must involve a ques- tion on which the existence or extent of a legal right depends." Chandrachud J also had categorically stated:- "I consider that the Constitution has pur- posefully conferred on this COURt, a ju- risdiction which is untrammelled by con- siderations which fetter the jurisdiction of a COURt of first instance, which enter- tains and tries suits of a civil nature. The very nature of the dispute arising under Article 131 is different, both in form and substance, from the nature of claims which require adjudication in ordinary suits." (167) MR. Andhyarujina, also referred to the comments of Mr. Seervai in his book, wherein the author has said that it is rea- sonable to hold that the COURt has power to resolve the whole dispute, unless its power is limited by express words or by necessary implications and the Supreme COURt would have the power to give what- ever reliefs are necessary for enforce- ment of a legal right claimed in the suit, if such legal right is established. Mr. Andhyarujina also contended that once the grievance of the State OF MAHARASTRA having brought forth before the Supreme COURt in a pending proceeding under Ar- ticle 131 of the Constitution, the jurisdic- tion having been invoked by the State of Andhra Pradesh, the COURt has ample power under Article 142 of the Constitu- tion and for doing complete justice be- tween the parties, the COURt would not be bound by the provisions of any procedure and can make a departure of the same. It is in this context, reliance was placed on the observations made by the Supreme COURt in the case of Delhi Judicial Serv- ices v. State of gujarat, [JT 1991 (3) SC 617 = 1991 (4) SCC 406 ], whereunder this COURt has observed as follows:- "No enactment made by Central or State legislature can limit or restrict the power of this COURt under Article 142 of the Constitution, though while exercising power under Article 142 of the Constitu- tion, the COURt must take into consid- eration the statutory provisions regulat- ing the matter in dispute. What would be the need of "complete justice" in a cause or matter would depend upon the facts and circumstances of each case and while exercising that power the COURt would take into consideration the ex- press provisions of a substantive stat- ute. Once this COURt has taken seisin of a case, cause or matter, it has power to pass any order or issue direction as may be necessary to do complete jus- tice in the matter." (168) MR. Andhyarujina submitted that the likelihood of submergence within the State OF MAHARASTRA on account of height of dam at Almatti being raised to 524.256 meters, was disclosed only during the pendency of the present suit and the State of Karnataka itself in its letter dated 10th of August, 1998 had communicated to the State OF MAHARASTRA that the State need not approach the COURt of law on this is- sue as the matter can be resolved amicably. According to the learned counsel, the State of Karnataka too agreed to carry out actual field surveys and calculations to determine the ex- tent of submergence under the direc- tions of Central Water Commission in its meeting dated 22.2.1999 and those studies are still under progress and further the Supreme COURt itself had passed an order of status quo relating to the height of Almatti Dam by order dated 2.11.1998 and consequently, the State OF MAHARASTRA never thought it fit to file an independent suit, invoking the jurisdiction of the COURt under Arti- cle 131. But the State of Karnataka having obtained the liberty from this Hon'ble COURt to proceed further with the installation of the assembly of the gates by orderdated 4.11.1998 and the said State of Karnataka refusing to give an undertaking to the State OF MAHARASTRA not to raise the height of the Almatti Dam beyond the present level of 509 meters, the State OF MAHARASTRA was compelled to put forth its grievance on the question of likely submergence of its territory and has prayed for the relief of injunction against the State of Karnataka for rais- ing the dam height up to 524.256 me- ters. Mr. Andhyarujina also submitted that the exact extent of area to be sub- merged in the event the Almatti Dam is allowed to be construCTEd upto 524.256 meters, has not yet been as- certained and surveys are still on, but there cannot be any doubt that a large scale of the area within the State OF MAHARASTRA would get submerged. Mr. Nariman, the learned senior coun- sel, appearing for the State of Karnataka did not seriously dispute the right of a co-defendant like State OF MAHARASTRA to put forth the grievances so as to get relief against another co- defendant, though he undoubtedly, sub- mitted that in the event, the State OF MAHARASTRA was allowed to have the additional written statement and an ad- judication of the additional issues framed, the State of Karnataka should have been given an opportunity, putting forth its case. He however contended that the dispute relating to submer- gence of territory OF MAHARASTRA on account of the height of the dam at Almatti being raised to 524.256 meters, cannot be a matter of adjudication in. a suit under Article 131, since the State OF MAHARASTRA had not raised the dis- pute before the Tribunal itself, even though the Project Report submitted by the State of Karnataka before the Tri- bunal indicated the height of the dam at 524.256 meters. According to Mr. Nariman, such a dispute would be a fresh water dispute and would not be a part of adjudicated dispute and as such under Article 131 of the Consti- tution this dispute cannot be enter- tained and decided upon by this COURt. Mr. According to Mr. Nariman, such a dispute would be a fresh water dispute and would not be a part of adjudicated dispute and as such under Article 131 of the Consti- tution this dispute cannot be enter- tained and decided upon by this COURt. Mr. Nariman also contended that the materials on record do not establish or do not help the COURt to come to a positive finding that in the event, the Almatti Dam is raised to 524.256 me- ters, a large extent of the State OF MAHARASTRA would get submerged in- asmuch as the submergence, if any and the flow back, if any, would be in the river itself and not any territory be- yond the river. Mr. Nariman further urged that the State OF MAHARASTRA did anticipate submurgence of its territory as would appear from its stand before the Tribunal which is apparent from paragraph 6.3.1(k) of Exh. MRK-1. It is true, according to the learned coun- sel that the Tribunal did not consider the said question but after the Original Report was submitted, MAHARASTRA could have filed an application under Section 5(3) of the Act, seeking clari- fications on the question of submer- gence but, that was not admittedly done, which would indicate that it had no grievance on the question of sub- mergence. Having examined the rival contentions on this issue, we have no hesitation to hold that the issue must be answered against the State OF MAHARASTRA. (169) IT is no doubt. true that the jurisdiction of the COURt in a suit under Article 131 of the Constitution is quite wide, which is apparent from the language used in the said Article and as has been interpreted by this COURt in the two cases already referred to [see 1978 (2)SCR 1 and 1978 (1) SCR 64]. It is also true that Article 142 confers wide powers on this COURt to do complete justice be- tween the parties and the COURt can pass any order or issue any direction that may be necessary, but at the same time, within the meaning of Article 131, the dispute that has been raised in the present suit is between the State of Andhra Pradesh and State of Karnataka and question, therefore, would be whether it involve any existence or ex- tent of a legal right of such dispute. In answering such a dispute, it may be dif- ficult to entertain a further dispute on the question of submergence as raised by the State OF MAHARASTRA, a co-defend- ant. But in view of the stand taken by Mr. Nariman, without further delving into the matter and without expressing any final opinion, whether such a stand, as the one taken by MAHARASTRA is possi- ble for being adjudicated upon, we would examine the merits of the said conten- tion. A bare perusal of the report of the Tribunal setting out the facts as found by it and giving its decision on the mat- ters referred to it as per Exh.PKI as well as the Further Report of the said Tribu- nal, giving explanation to the application for clarifications filed by the different States, as per Exh. PK2, we find that the question of submergence within the ter- ritory of the State OF MAHARASTRA on ac- count of Almatti Dam in the State of Karnataka has not at all been discussed nor any opinion has been expressed thereon. The Tribunal having given its decision on the question of sharing of the water in river Krishna on enbloc al- location basis, if the user of such water in a particular way, becomes detrimen- tal to another State, then such a griev- ance would be a fresh dispute within the meaning of Section 2(C) read with Sec- tion 3 of the Act and it cannot be held to be an adjudicated dispute of the Tribu- nal. We have already indicated that it is only an adjudicated dispute between the States on which a decision has been given by a Tribunal constituted under Section 4 of the Act by the Government of India, can be a subject matter of a suit under Article 131, if there is any breach in implementation of the said decision of the Tribunal. But a dispute between the two states in relation to the said In- ter-State river arising out of the user of the water by one State would be a fresh water dispute and as such would be barred under Article 262 read with Sec- tion 11 of the Inter-State Water Dis- putes Act, 1956. But a dispute between the two states in relation to the said In- ter-State river arising out of the user of the water by one State would be a fresh water dispute and as such would be barred under Article 262 read with Sec- tion 11 of the Inter-State Water Dis- putes Act, 1956. The question of sub- mergence of land pursuant to the user of water in respect of an Inter-State river allocated in favour of a particular State is inextricably conneCTEd with the allocation of water itself and the present grievance of the State OF MAHARASTRA would be a complaint on account of an executive action of the State of Karnataka within the meaning of Sec- tion 3(A) and also would be a water dis- pute within the ambit of Section 2(C) and, therefore, it would not be appro- priate for this COURt to entertain and ex- amine and answer the same. We do appreciate the concern of the State OF MAHARASTRA, when it comes to its knowledge that there would be large- scale inundation and submergence of its territory if the height of almatti Dam is allowed to be raised to 524.256 me- ters, as per the latest Project Report of the State of Karnataka, but such con- cern of the State OF MAHARASTRA alone would not be sufficient for this COURt to decide the matter and issue any order of injunction as prayed for in the addi- tional written statement filed by the State OF MAHARASTRA and on the other hand, it would be a matter for being agitated upon before a Tribunal to be constituted by the Govt. of India in the event, a complaint is made to that ef- fect by the State OF MAHARASTRA. We also do not find sufficient materials in this proceeding before us to enable this COURt to come to a positive conclusion as to what would be the effect on the question of submergence, if the height of the dam at Almatti is allowed to be construCTEd up to 524.256 meters in- asmuch as, according to the State OF MAHARASTRA, the joint surveys are stit1 on. It is too well settled that rin COURt can issue an order of mandatory injunc- tion on mere apprehension without positive datas about the adverse ef- fects being placed and without any defi- nite conclusion on the question of ir- reparable injury and balance of conven- ience. Then again, while allowing a par- ticular State to use the water of an in- ter-State river, if the manner of such user really submerges some land in some other State, then the question has to be gone into as to what would be the amount of compensation and how the question of rehabilitation of those persons within the submerged area can be dealt with which really is an aspect of the doctrine of equitable apportionment and all these can be gone into, if a complaint regarding the same is made and the Government of India appoints a Tribunal for the said pur- pose. But these things cannot be gone into, in a suit filed under Article 131 as a part of implementation of an adjudi- cated dispute of a Tribunal. It is also surprising to note that even though the Original Project Report of 1970 in rela- tion to Almatti Dam had been produced before the Tribunal, which was adjudi- cating the disputes raised by different States, yet the State OF MAHARASTRA never thought of the question of sub- mergence and never attempted to get that question decided upon. In the aforesaid premises, howsoever wide the power of the COURt under Article 142 of the Constitution may be, we do not think it proper to entertain the question of submergence, raised by the State OF MAHARASTRA in its additional written statement and decide the question of injunction, in relation to the height of Almatti Dam on that basis. Issue 9 (c) is accordingly decided against the State OF MAHARASTRA. (170) IT would also be appropriate to no- tice at this stage another argument ad- vanced by Mr. Issue 9 (c) is accordingly decided against the State OF MAHARASTRA. (170) IT would also be appropriate to no- tice at this stage another argument ad- vanced by Mr. Andhyarujina, the learned senior counsel appearing for the State OF MAHARASTRA, to the effect that in view of Clause XV of the decision of the Tribu- nal each State is entitled to use water allocated in their favour within its bound- ary, the moment by user of such water by one State, any territory of another State get submerged then it would be a violation of the decision of the Tribunal contained in Clause XV, and therefore, the said State should be injunCTEd from such user. Clause XV of the decision reads thus:- "Nothing in the order of this Tribunal shall impair the right or power or authority of any State to regulate within its bounda- ries the use of water, or to enjoy the ben- efit of water within that State in a man- ner not in consistent with the order of this Tribunal." The aforesaid Clause does not in any way interfere with the rights of a State from using the water allocated by the Tribunal within its boundaries nor is this Clause capable of being construed that if any submergence is caused in any other State by such user, then the user be- comes inconsistent with any order of the Tribunal. Mr. Andhyarujina's entire argu- ment is based upon the expression 'regu- late within its boundary' but that expres- sion applies to the use of water or enjoys benefits of water within that State. Since the question of submergence of any other State by the user of water by another State allocated in its favour is not a sub- ject matter of adjudication by the Tribu- nal and in fact the Tribunal has not ex- pressed any opinion on the same it would be difficult for us to hold that submer- gence/pso facto even if admitted to be any within the State OF MAHARASTRA by user of water by the State of Karnataka at Almatti can be held to be in consistent with the order of Tribunal. In this view of the matter we are unable to accept the submission of Mr. In this view of the matter we are unable to accept the submission of Mr. Andhyarujina, learned senior counsel appearing for the State OF MAHARASTRA that the user of water by the State of Karnataka by constructing a Dam at Almatti is inconsistent with Clause XV of the decision of Tribunal. Issue 9(C), therefore, is answered against the State OF MAHARASTRA. ISSUE NO. 10 (171) THE aforesaid issue has been framed in view of the averments made in para- graph 68 of the plaint. In the aforesaid paragraph of the plaint the plaintiff has indicated the figure in terms of acreage of land planned to be irrigated by differ- ent projects and excess utilisation of the water beyond the allocation made by the Tribunal in respect of different projects. The plaintiff obviously is under a miscon- ception that in the decision of the Tribu- nal there has been a project wise alloca- tion of water in respect of different projects in different States. We have al- ready considered the matter at length and have come to the conclusion that the allocation was made enbloc and not project wise and as such, the question that construction of oversized reservoir at Almatti is contrary to the decision of the Tribunal does not arise. Besides Clause VII of the decision of the Tribunal indicates as to how use of water in a water year will be measured and it stipu- lates that while use shall be measured by the extent of depletion of the waters of the river Krishna in any manner what- soever including losses of water by evaporation and other natural causes from man made reservoirs and other works without deducting the quantity of water which may return after such use to the river, but so far as water stored in any reservoir across any stream of the Krishna river system is concerned, stor- age shall not of itself be iecukoned as de- pletion of the water of the stream except to the extent of the losses of water from evaporation and other natural causes from such reservoir. The water diverted from such reservoir for its own use, how- ever, has to be reckoned as use by that State in the water year. The water diverted from such reservoir for its own use, how- ever, has to be reckoned as use by that State in the water year. In view of this decision of the Tribunal assuming the State of Karnataka has the potentiality of storage of water at Almatti, in the ab- sence of any materials placed by the plaintiff to indicate as to any diversion from such reservoir by the State of Karnataka for its own use, it is not possi- ble to com'e to a conclusion that there has been a violation of the decision of the Tri- bunal by the State of Karnataka by hav- ing potentiality of storage of water at Almatti, as contended by the plaintiff's counsel. It is in this connection it is worth- while to notice that after submission of the report and the decision in the year 1973 as per Exhibit PK-1 the Government of India had filed the application for clari- fication which was registered as Refer- ence No. 1 of 1974 by the Tribunal and Clarification 1(b) was to the following ef- fect :- "While the Tribunal have laid down re- striction on the use of water in certain sub-basins as well as the total use by each State, there may be locations where hydro power generation (within the basin) may be feasible at exclusively hy- dro-sites or at sites for multi-purpose projects. At such sites, part of the wa- ters allocated to the States, as also wa- ter which is to flow down to other States could be used for power generation ei- ther at a single power station or in a se- ries of power stations. The Tribunal may kindly give guidance as to whether such use of water for power generation within the Krishna basin is permitted even though such use may exceed the limits of consumptive use specified by the Tri- bunal for each State or sub-basin or reach, and if so, under what conditions and safeguards." The State of andhra Pradesh to the afore- said application for clarification submit- ted two Notes Nos. 9 and 10 before the Tribunal on 7th May, 1975 and 8th May, 1975. 9 and 10 before the Tribunal on 7th May, 1975 and 8th May, 1975. In this note it was specifically pleaded that the Tribunal may be pleased to explain that the Upper State have no right to store water in excess of share allocated to them and in a manner which will affect the right of the State of Andhra Pradesh in the dependable flow. Sev- eral grounds had been advanced by the State of Andhra Pradesh as to why such guidance is needed, particularly when under Scheme 'A' allocation there has been no express provision for sharing of deficiency. The Tribunal considered the same and ultimately noted in its further report under Exhibit PK-2 that the State of Andhra pradesh withdrew the said note and consequently no ground for any further clarification. A note having been submitted by the State of Andhra Pradesh seeking a clarification for FIXA- tion of a limit in the matter of storage of water by the upper riparian States and then ultimately having withdrawn the same the present grievance that con- struction of large sized Dam at Almatti by the State of Karnataka would ad- versely affect the State of Andhra Pradesh and its right could be infringed is devoid of any substance. The issue is accordingly answered against the plain- tiff. ISSUES NO. 11 &12: (172) THESE two issues center round the same question as to whether there was any specific allocation or utilisation at Upper Krishna Project and whether pro- viding for irrigation under Almatti Canal is contrary to the decision of the Tribu- nal since no allocation for irrigation has been made thereunder. We have al- ready discussed the relevant materials placed by the State of Andhra Pradesh as well as the decision of the Tribunal and we have come to the conclusion that the plaintiff -the State of Andhra Pra- desh, has utterly failed to establish that infact there was any specific allocation by the Tribunal in respect of Upper Krishna Project or the Almatti Reser- voir and on the other hand, the alloca- tion was enbloc making it clear and unambiguous that States can utilise the quantity of water allocated in their fa- vour within their territory. This being the position we have no hesitation to an- swer these two issues against the plain- tiff State -Andhra Pradesh and we hold that the plaintiff has failed to produce any materials in support of the afore- said two issues. These two issues accordingly are answered against the plaintiff. ISSUE NO.13 (173) SO far as this issue is concerned the question of entitlement of the State of Karnataka to reallocate or re-adjust uti- lisation under UKP or any other project unilaterally does not arise at all. If the Tribunal would have made any project wise allocation and would have restriCTEd the user of water under UKP to any particular quantity then the ques- tion of re-allocation by the State of Karnataka on its own would have arisen but the Tribunal not having made any al- location in respect of the Upper Krishna Project which includes Almatti and hav- ing made an enbloc allocation so long as the total user by the State of Karnataka does not exceed the enbloc allocation in its favour it cannot be said that there has been any violation by the State of Karnataka by planning to use any particu- lar quantity of water at Almatti. Then again the question of getting concurrence of other riparian States, as has been raised by the State of Andhra Pradesh is wholly misconceived. Neither there exists any law which compels any State to get the concurrence of other riparian States whenever it uses water in respect of in- ter-State river nor the decision of the Tri- bunal which allocates the water in the Krishna basin on the basis of 75 de- pendability which figure was in turn ar- rived at by an agreement of parties puts any condition to have the concurrence of other riparian State. In this view of the matter without further dilating on this is- sue, we answer the same against the plaintiff. ISSUE NO. 14 (174) THE aforesaid issue has been raised on the hypothesis that the Union of India is going to sanction different projects within the State of Karnataka which are in violation of the decision of Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal. As has been indicated earlier, so far as the Upper Krishna Project is concerned, the Government of India has approved the Dam height at crest level of 509 meters. As has been indicated earlier, so far as the Upper Krishna Project is concerned, the Government of India has approved the Dam height at crest level of 509 meters. The subsequent revised project submitted by the State of Karnataka in 1993 and re-submitted in 1996 are still under consideration and no final decision has been taken ther- eon. The Union of India in its counter affidavit has categorically refuted the allegations made by the State of Andhra Pradesh in this regard and on the other hand, it has been averred that State of Andhra Pradesh is going ahead with some project not sanctioned by the Un- ion Government. In COURse of hearing Mr. Ganguli, learned Senior counsel ap- pearing for the State of Andhra Pradesh, has not produced any mate- rials in support of the aforesaid stand pertaining to issue no. 14. We, there- fore, decide the said issue against the plaintiff. ISSUE No.15 (175) THE aforesaid issue has been framed on the allegation of the plaintiff that the State of Karnataka is likely to execute the Upper Krishna Stage II multipurpose project without getting the environmental clearance under the Environment Protec- tion Act as well as in violation of the Noti- fication issued by the Central Govern- ment in exercise of its power under the same Act and the Rules made thereun- der. Under Article 256 of the Constitu- tion it is an obligation for the States to exercise their power ensuring compliance with laws made by Parliament and even it enables the Union Government to give such direction to a State as may be nec- essary for that purpose. In a federal structure like ours, the Constitution itself maintains balance by distributing pow- ers between the Centre and the States and by conferring power on the Central Government to regulate and to issue di- rections whenever necessary. The sev- eral provisions of the Constitution have been tested in the last 50 years and there is no reason to conceive that any State will force ahead with its project con- cerning user of water in respect of Inter- state Reservoir without getting the sanc- tion/concurrence of the Appropriate Au- thorities and without compliance with the relevant statutes or laws made by the Parliament. It is a common knowledge that the large scale projects planned by each of these States, are submitted to the Planning Commission for its approval and for getting financial assistance. Such projects are then examined by different authorities and it is only after getting ap- proval of the Planning Commission the same is submitted to the appropriate de- partments of the Government of India where again all the formalities are scruti- nised and final sanction or permission is granted. So far as user of water in re- spect of an Inter-State Reservoir is con- cerned, the plans are also examined by the Central Water Commission, who is an expert body and the views given by such Commission also is taken into con- sideration by the Government of-India. This being the entire gamut of procedure we really fail to understand on what ba- sis the State of Andhra Pradesh has made the allegation and the issue has been struck in that respect. Needless to mention that every such projects whether being executed in the State OF MAHARASTRA or Karnataka or Andhra Pradesh must be approved by the Appro- priate Authority of the Government of In- dia and necessarily, therefore, before any approval is accorded, the project must be found to have complied with all the relevant laws dealing with the matter. It has not been placed before us that the State of Karnataka has carried out any project in contravention of the provisions of any particular law made by Parliament or in contravention of any direction is- sued by the Government of India. This issue accordingly, in our opinion, is pre- mature. But we hasten to add that all the projects of different States concerning user of water available to them in respect of an Inter-State River must be duly sanctioned by the Appropriate Authorities of the Government of India after proper scanning and it is only then the State would be entitled to carry out the same. Y. The issue is answered accordingly. ISSUE No.16 (176) IF the issue in question is exam- ined in relation to the construction of Almatti Dam, which in fact is the bone of contention in the suit itself, we have not been able to find out as to how the State of Andhra Pradesh has been or would be adversely affeCTEd or what would be the consequences thereon. When a plaintiff wants to seek a relief of injunction by the action or inaction of the defendant on the ground that such action or inaction has been grossly detrimental to the interest of the plaintiff- State and has infringed the rights of the plaintiff-State then in such a case it is obligatory for the plaintiff to put materials on record and establish the necessary ingredients to enable the COURt to come to the conclusion that by such action or inaction of the defendant the plaintiff has suffered irreparable dam- ages . When we examine the aver- ments in the plaint as well as the docu- ments sought to be relied upon by the plaintiff on this score, we find that there exists no materials on the basis of which it is possible for a COURt to come to a conclusion that on account of the construction of Almatti Dam within the State of Karnataka the lower riparian State - the plaintiff has been adversely affeCTEd or is likely to be adversely af- feCTEd. The complaint and grievance of the plaintiff-State is rather imaginary than real and on the records of this pro- ceedings no materials have been put forth to enable the COURt to come to a conclusion on the question of so-called adverse effect on the State of Andhra Pradesh on account of the construction of Dam at Almatti. Mr. Ganguli, learned senior counsel appearing for the State of Andhra Pradesh referred to the writ- ten memorandum furnished to the Committee by the State of Karnataka wherein the said State had unequivo- cally admitted that the additional stor- age in Almatti will cause a temporary reduction in quantum of flows going to Andhra Pradesh for a period of about three monTHS during August to October which is made good later on. Accord- ing to the learned counsel since those three monTHS are vital for the crops in the State of Andhra Pradesh the State will sustain irreparable damages and, as such on the admission of the State of Karnataka a finding could be arrived at. At the outset we must state that the written memorandum furnished by the State of Karnataka cannot be read in isolation by spinning out a particular sentence and must be read as a whole. At the outset we must state that the written memorandum furnished by the State of Karnataka cannot be read in isolation by spinning out a particular sentence and must be read as a whole. Thus read we do not find any admis- sion on the part of the State of Karnataka indicating any reduction of flows to the State of Andhra Pradesh. Mr. Ganguli also pointed out to Clause XV of Scheme 'B' whereunder the Tri- bunal itself had come to the conclusion about the possibility of water shortage and had empowered the concerned authority to make necessary adjust- ment. But what has been stated there- under is in relation to the adoption of Scheme 'B' which has not been possi- ble on account of lack of sincerity of the State of Andhra Pradesh and even thereunder the Krishna Valley Authority has been empowered as often as it thinks fit to determine the quantity of water which is likely to fall to the share of each State and adjust the uses of the authorities in such a matter so that by the end of water year each State is en- able, as far as practicable, use the wa- ter according to their share. We need not further examine this aspect particu- larly when Scheme 'B' has not been op- erative so far and even this COURt has refused to issue any mandatory injunc- tion for adoption of Scheme 'B' in OS 1 of 1997 filed by the State of Karnataka. In the aforesaid premises, we do not have enough materials to come to the conclusion that the construction o Almatti Dam by the State of Karnataks has in any way affeCTEd or likely to af feet the State of Andhra Pradesh ii any manner and consequently the said issue must be answered against th plaintiff. ISSUE NO. 17 (177) UNDER this issue, the question th arises for consideration is whether I the decision of the Krishna Water Disputes Tribunal, only 5.00 TMC w; awarded for utilisation at Hippargi. Wh answering Issue No. 3, we have alrea held that the Tribunal only made enbloc allocation and not any specific allocation for specific projects, excepting those mentioned in Clause (IX) and under Clause (IX) so far as Hippargi is con- cerned, coming under K2 sub-basin, the same does not find mention therein. Wh answering Issue No. 3, we have alrea held that the Tribunal only made enbloc allocation and not any specific allocation for specific projects, excepting those mentioned in Clause (IX) and under Clause (IX) so far as Hippargi is con- cerned, coming under K2 sub-basin, the same does not find mention therein. In this view of the matter, the said issue is answered against the plaintiff. ISSUE NO. 18 (178) THE aforesaid issue has been framed on the basis of averments made in paragraph 66(v) and paragraph 68(b) item No. 4. The averment in paragraph 66(v) is on the basis of Newspaper Re- port and the averment made in para- graph 68(b) item No. 4 is the own esti- mation of State of Andhra Pradesh. Defendant No. 1- State of Karnataka denies the contents of the averments in the plaint vide paragraph No. 12.88 and paragraph No. 12.111. The counsel ap- pearing for the State of Andhra Pradesh also did not place any material in sup- port of the aforesaid issue in COURse of the arguments and the averments in the plaint having been denied in the written statement, the issue in question must be answered against the plaintiff. ISSUE NO. 19 (179) THOUGH, the plaintiff-State of Andhra Pradesh on its own estimation, has made an averment in paragraph 68(b) to the effect that the plan utilisation by the State of Karnataka in K2 sub-basin is 428.75 TMC on the basis of which the aforesaid issue has been framed, but no positive datas have been placed before us to come to the aforesaid conclusion. On the other hand, the State of Karnataka in its written statement has asserted that under Upper Krishna Project, the utilisa- tion would be to the tune of 173 TMC and this is apparent from several documents placed before the Tribunal as well as in this proceeding. In this view of the mat- ter, we answer this issue by holding that the plaintiff has failed to establish that the cumulative utilisation in K2 sub-basin of the State of Karnataka would be to the tune of 428.75 TMC. At any rate, since we have already held that the allocation was enbloc and there is no restriction for utilisation in K2 sub-basin in the decision of the Tribunal. The issue really does not survive for consideration. The issue is answered accordingly. ISSUE NO. At any rate, since we have already held that the allocation was enbloc and there is no restriction for utilisation in K2 sub-basin in the decision of the Tribunal. The issue really does not survive for consideration. The issue is answered accordingly. ISSUE NO. 20 (180) THIS issue relates to the decision of the Tribunal in Clause (IX), under which Clause, restrictions have been put to the extent indicated thereunder. But the State of Andhra Pradesh has not been able to establish the allegation made in this re- gard nor even the counsel, appearing for the State has made any submission ther- eon. During the COURse of hearing of the suit, on behalf of the State of Andhra Pradesh, written submissions had been filed and even after the close of the hear- ing, the State of Andhra Pradesh has filed a written submission on 15th of March, 2000, in which also, there has been no mention about the alleged violation in sub- basins K-6, K-8 and K-9. We, therefore, answer this issue by holding that the plaintiff has failed to establish the same and the issue is answered against the plaintiff accordingly. ISSUE NO. 21 (181) THIS issue relates to utilisation of water under Almatti. In paragraph 66(iii), the plaintiff has made the averment, which has been denied and explained in the written statement by the State of Karnataka vide paragraph 12.85 and the State of Karnataka further averred that the entire utilisation at Almatti is within its allocable share and no injury is caused to the State of Andhra Pradesh thereun- der. Since, we have already held that under the decision of the Tribunal, the al- location was enbloc and not project-wise, even if it is held that utilisation under Almatti would be of the order of 91 TMC, as claimed, the same would not violate the decision of the Tribunal. That apart, we do not have any positive material, on the basis of which, it can be said that the utilisation under Almatti would be of the order of 91 TMC. The issue is answered accordingly. (182) IN COURse of arguments Mr. Ganguli, the learned senior counsel for the State of Andhra Pradesh had raised a con- tention that the State of Karnataka to frustrate any decree to be passed by this COURt injuncting the Defendant no. The issue is answered accordingly. (182) IN COURse of arguments Mr. Ganguli, the learned senior counsel for the State of Andhra Pradesh had raised a con- tention that the State of Karnataka to frustrate any decree to be passed by this COURt injuncting the Defendant no. 1 from raising the construction of the Dam at Almatti at a height of 524.256 m. has al- ready incorporated an autonomous body, called Krishna Bhagya Jala Nigam Limit- ed (KBJNL) and the State Government has divested itself of all powers relating to the construction of Dam at Almatti with the aforesaid Nigam and this has been designedly made so that any or- der or decree for injunction would not be binding. Since this argument had been advanced towards the concluding stage and there was no assertion in the plaint in this regard, nor any issue had been struck by the COURt, the State of Karnataka had been permitted to file an affidavit indicating the correct state of affairs in relation to the constitution of KBJNL and to allay or apprehension in the minds of the plaintiff-State. An affi- davit had been filed by the Secretary to the Government of Karnataka, Irrigation Department, who has also been nomi- nated as Director of KBJNL, the said nomination having been made under Ar- ticle 147(c) of the Articles of Associa- tion of the Companies. It has been cat- egorically stated in the said affidavit that for facilitation of mobilising funds and providing sufficient funds to complete irrigation projects the constitution of KBJNL has been constituted with the sole idea to complete the works of Up- per Krishna Projects by 2000AD. This Company is a Government Company which has been established with an ap- proval of the Cabinet in the State of Karnataka by its decision dated 6th May, 1994 and the Chief Minister of the State of Karnataka is the Chairman of the Company whereas Deputy Chief Minis- ter is the Vice-Chairman of the Board of Directors. All the Subscribers to the Memorandum are Government Officials and it has been declared to be a Gov- ernment Company. The Memorandum of Articles of Association have been ex- hibited as Exhibited PAP 210. All the Subscribers to the Memorandum are Government Officials and it has been declared to be a Gov- ernment Company. The Memorandum of Articles of Association have been ex- hibited as Exhibited PAP 210. The affi- davit has given the details as to how the State Government retains full control over KBJNL and on going through the said affidavit we have no hesitation to come to the conclusion that the appre- hension of the plaintiff-State is wholly mis-conceived and devoid of any sub- stance. (183) IN view of our conclusions drawn on different issues, it is not possible for the COURt to grant the relief of permanent mandatory injunction, so far as construc- tion of the Dam at Almatti is concerned as well as the reliefs sought for in para- graphs (b) to (k). But at the same time, we make it clear that there is no bar for raising the height of the Dam at Almatti upto 519.6 meters subject to getting clearance from the Appropriate Authority of the Central Government and any other Statutory Authority, required under law. The question of raising the height upto 524.256 meters at Almatti could be ap- propriately gone into by a Tribunal, to be appointed by the Central Government, on being approached by any of the three riparian States and such Tribunal could also go into the question of apprehension of submergence within the territory of the State OF MAHARASTRA and give its deci- sion thereon, in the event the height of the Dam at Almatti is allowed to be raised upto 524.256 meters. The Tribunal would also be entitled to go into the question of reallocation of the water in river Krishna basin, if new datas are produced by the States on the basis of improved method of gazing. (184) THE suit is disposed of accordingly. There will be no order as to costs.